Selected quad for the lemma: kingdom_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
kingdom_n church_n heaven_n see_v 2,298 5 3.6221 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A68449 A catholike and ecclesiasticall exposition of the holy Gospell after S. Iohn. Gathered out of all the singuler and approued deuines (which the Lorde hath giuen vnto his Church) by Augustine Marlorate. And translated out of Latin into Englishe by Thomas Timme minister. Seene and allovved according to the order appoynted; Novi Testamenti catholica expositio ecclesiastica. English. Selections Marlorat, Augustin, 1506-1562.; Tymme, Thomas, d. 1620. 1575 (1575) STC 17406; ESTC S114256 780,235 632

There are 33 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

mean_n to_o speak_v so_o sensiblye_o to_o our_o understanding_n that_o we_o may_v not_o fail_v of_o his_o meaning_n in_o any_o point_n and_o it_o be_v a_o most_o ancient_a and_o approve_a kind_n of_o teach_v to_o instruct_v by_o a_o dialogue_n which_o also_o the_o most_o ancient_a philosopher_n have_v use_v b._n therefore_o whereas_o our_o saviour_n christ_n so_o lovinglye_o and_o familiarlye_v appli_v this_o doctrine_n to_o the_o imbecilitye_n of_o nicodemus_n and_o despise_v not_o the_o same_o all_o such_o as_o be_v weak_a must_v be_v bear_v with_o all_o we_o be_v teach_v how_o to_o handle_v such_o as_o be_v weak_a and_o to_o reject_v no_o man_n which_o seek_v after_o the_o truth_n but_o with_o all_o gentleness_n and_o long_o suffer_v to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v such_o m._n nicodemus_n be_v to_o be_v blame_v in_o this_o that_o he_o come_v not_o to_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o day_n time_n but_o in_o the_o night_n for_o the_o which_o the_o lord_n may_v just_o have_v reproove_v he_o but_o the_o most_o meek_a and_o patient_a creator_n of_o all_o flesh_n object_v no_o such_o thing_n unto_o he_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o if_o so_o be_v thou_o know_v that_o i_o be_o come_v a_o teacher_n from_o god_n and_o do_v planelye_a perceyve_v the_o power_n of_o god_n by_o the_o sign_n which_o i_o do_v why_o then_o do_v thou_o come_v unto_o i_o secréetelye_o and_o not_o open_o in_o the_o day_n time_n but_o he_o think_v it_o better_o a_o great_a deal_n to_o open_v to_o this_o good_a man_n the_o very_a well_o spring_n of_o evyll_n he_o perceyve_v that_o he_o be_v as_o yet_o ignorant_a of_o the_o truth_n and_o that_o he_o fear_v man_n more_o than_o god_n therefore_o he_o dispute_v with_o he_o concern_v the_o very_a root_n and_o original_a of_o all_o wickedness_n and_o whereas_o our_o saviour_n christ_n twice_o repeat_v this_o word_n verylye_n he_o do_v it_o to_o make_v he_o the_o more_o attentive_a for_o he_o intend_v to_o speak_v of_o a_o matter_n most_o waightye_a and_o grave_a of_o all_o other_o can_v not_o but_o make_v nicodemus_n more_o attentive_a who_o otherwise_o will_v have_v very_o slight_o or_o little_a or_o nothing_o regard_v this_o whole_a communication_n m._n but_o how_o do_v these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n answer_v those_o thing_n whereof_o nicodemus_n speak_v he_o come_v to_o our_o saviour_n with_o good_a intent_n and_o meaning_n but_o yet_o as_o a_o doctor_n of_o the_o law_n who_o think_v to_o have_v easylye_o attain_a to_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o truth_n at_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n by_o his_o own_o wisdom_n and_o learning_n but_o the_o lord_n even_o at_o the_o first_o put_v away_o this_o persuasion_n affirm_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n to_o be_v such_o that_o no_o mortal_a man_n how_o worldly_a wise_n or_o learn_v in_o the_o law_n soever_o he_o be_v can_v understand_v the_o same_o except_o he_o be_v bear_v a_o new_a c._n therefore_o how_o far_o fetch_v or_o unapte_v for_o the_o purpose_n these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n seem_v to_o be_v yet_o notwithstanding_o most_o fetelye_o he_o begin_v therewith_o for_o as_o the_o seed_n be_v cast_v in_o vain_a upon_o the_o untilled_a ground_n even_o so_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v in_o vain_a except_o the_o hearer_n be_v first_o frame_v to_o obedience_n and_o be_v make_v apt_a to_o be_v teach_v therefore_o if_o we_o will_v profit_v in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n we_o must_v learn_v to_o begin_v here_o except_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v so_o long_o as_o thou_o have_v not_o that_o which_o be_v most_o principal_a in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n i_o make_v small_a account_n of_o this_o that_o thou_o do_v acknowledge_v i_o to_o be_v a_o teacher_n for_o this_o be_v the_o first_o step_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n that_o thou_o become_v a_o new_a man_n m._n this_o answer_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n ought_v diligent_o to_o be_v consider_v for_o it_o comprehend_v two_o special_a thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v of_o these_o which_o be_v conversant_a in_o read_v of_o the_o scripture_n one_o be_v that_o no_o man_n can_v know_v what_o thing_n pertain_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o to_o our_o salvation_n the_o second_o be_v that_o the_o new_a man_n be_v require_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n kingdom_n bu_n our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v here_o no_o man_n shall_v see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o no_o man_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n c._n as_o shall_v afterward_o appear_v by_o the_o text_n but_o they_o be_v deceyve_v which_o take_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o heaven_n when_o as_o rather_o it_o signify_v a_o spiritual_a life_n which_o be_v begin_v in_o this_o world_n by_o faith_n and_o do_v grow_v daily_o more_o and_o more_o according_a to_o the_o increase_n of_o faith_n therefore_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o this_o text_n be_v that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v true_o gather_v into_o the_o church_n and_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o son_n of_o god_n except_o he_o be_v first_o renew_v so_o that_o it_o be_v here_o briefelye_o show_v what_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o christianisme_n and_o hereby_o also_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o we_o be_v bear_v exile_n and_o banish_a man_n from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o be_v at_o perpetual_a enmity_n with_o he_o untyll_o he_o alter_v and_o change_v we_o by_o the_o second_o birth_n for_o it_o be_v a_o general_a sentence_n which_o comprehend_v all_o mankind_n b._n at_o other_o time_n our_o saviour_n christ_n speak_v the_o very_a same_o in_o other_o word_n name_o that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v his_o disciple_n except_o he_o deny_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n and_o follow_v he_o 14._o luke_n 14._o hereupon_o the_o apostle_n paul_n require_v the_o new_a man_n and_o a_o new_a creature_n in_o christ_n which_o so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o make_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n and_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v perfect_v daily_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o frame_v we_o more_o and_o more_o according_a to_o the_o image_n and_o likeness_n of_o god._n of_o the_o which_o you_o may_v read_v in_o all_o those_o place_n here_o coated_a in_o the_o margin_n 3_o 2_o cor._n 3.4_o and_o .5_o gala._n 3.6_o ephe_n 2.4_o collos_n 3_o but_o what_o need_n we_o cyte_v the_o place_n of_o saint_n paul_n when_o he_o handele_v the_o same_o in_o no_o place_n as_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n c._n to_o be_v short_a by_o this_o word_n of_o the_o new_a birth_n he_o mean_v not_o the_o correction_n of_o some_o one_o part_n but_o the_o renovation_n or_o renew_n of_o the_o whole_a man_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o we_o but_o corruption_n bu_n for_o the_o first_o birth_n comprehend_v all_o the_o strength_n of_o mankind_n as_o wit_n reason_n understanding_n will_n and_o what_o soever_o we_o have_v else_o by_o nature_n r._n wherefore_o man_n free_a will_n his_o merit_n and_o whatsoever_o else_o he_o can_v imagine_v to_o bring_v righteousness_n to_o himself_o be_v quite_o overthrow_v by_o this_o one_o sentence_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n we_o must_v therefore_o lay_v aside_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o contemn_v all_o humane_a strength_n that_o the_o second_o birth_n may_v take_v place_n in_o us._n 4._o nicodemus_n say_v unto_o he_o how_o can_v a_o man_n be_v bear_v when_o he_o be_v old_a can_v he_o enter_v into_o his_o mother_n womb_n and_o be_v bear_v again_o m._n nicodemus_n be_v as_o yet_o carnal_a and_o savour_v not_o of_o the_o spirit_n carnallye_o understand_v those_o spiritual_a thing_n which_o be_v speak_v by_o christ_n he_o know_v not_o the_o natural_a corruption_n of_o the_o first_o nativitye_n for_o if_o he_o have_v he_o will_v have_v make_v another_o manner_n of_o answer_n c._n and_o although_o the_o phrase_n of_o speech_n here_o use_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n yet_o notwithstanding_o see_v in_o some_o place_n of_o scripture_n regeneration_n scrib_n ignorant_a of_o regeneration_n mention_v be_v make_v of_o renovation_n or_o renew_v and_o see_v it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o first_o principle_n of_o faith_n it_o may_v appear_v how_o vainelye_o the_o scribe_n at_o that_o time_n have_v travail_v for_o true_o this_o be_v not_o one_o man_n fault_n to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o grace_n of_o regeneration_n but_o everye_o one_o of_o they_o occupy_v themselves_o about_o vain_a iangeling_n and_o question_n of_o no_o profit_n neglect_v the_o most_o principal_a part_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n the_o like_a also_o we_o may_v behold_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o
the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n but_o yet_o free_a that_o they_o may_v be_v reckon_v the_o heir_n of_o life_n who_o he_o sanctifi_v with_o his_o holy_a spirit_n m._n but_o see_v the_o faith_n of_o abraham_n be_v so_o great_o commend_v question_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v as_o a_o example_n for_o all_o other_o beléever_v to_o follow_v why_o do_v christ_n rather_o propound_v his_o work_n then_o his_o faith_n for_o he_o say_v not_o if_o you_o wear_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n you_o will_v have_v the_o faith_n of_o abraham_n but_o if_o you_o be_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n you_o will_v do_v the_o deed_n of_o abraham_n i_o answer_v because_o abraham_n faith_n be_v not_o dead_a and_o void_a answer_v answer_v but_o lively_a and_o effectual_a the_o lord_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o work_n of_o abraham_n which_o be_v do_v without_o faith_n but_o he_o make_v mention_v of_o the_o work_n of_o abraham_n as_o of_o fruit_n witnese_v and_o declare_v his_o faith_n because_o he_o purpose_v by_o manifest_a argument_n to_o prove_v that_o his_o adversary_n be_v degenerate_a from_o the_o piety_n of_o abraham_n for_o if_o they_o have_v have_v the_o faith_n of_o abraham_n they_o will_v have_v declare_v the_o same_o by_o such_o work_n as_o differ_v not_o from_o the_o piety_n of_o abraham_n a_o good_a tree_n be_v know_v by_o good_a fruit_n 40._o but_o now_o you_o go_v about_o to_o kill_v i_o a_o man_n that_o have_v tell_v you_o the_o truth_n which_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o god_n this_o do_v not_o abraham_n c._n by_o the_o effect_n he_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o child_n of_o abraham_n because_o they_o resist_v god_n for_o what_o notable_a thing_n be_v commend_v in_o abraham_n but_o the_o obedience_n of_o faith_n this_o therefore_o be_v note_n of_o difference_n so_o often_o as_o we_o must_v put_v a_o difference_n between_o stranger_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o vain_a titelle_n howsoever_o the_o world_n do_v esteem_v of_o they_o be_v of_o no_o estimation_n with_o god_n m._n christ_n may_v have_v object_v many_o other_o work_n to_o the_o jew_n which_o they_o have_v commit_v whereby_o they_o declare_v themselves_o to_o be_v degenerate_a and_o unlaufull_a child_n for_o abraham_n be_v liberal_a but_o they_o be_v covetouse_n abraham_n be_v sound_n and_o perfect_a but_o they_o be_v ypocrite_n abraham_n worship_v god_n aright_o but_o they_o make_v the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n worship_n a_o den_n of_o théeve_n they_o devour_v widow_n house_n which_o abraham_n never_o do_v christ_n i_o say_v may_v have_v object_v some_o of_o these_o thing_n but_o leave_v all_o these_o thing_n he_o only_o object_v this_o that_o they_o go_v about_o to_o kill_v he_o for_o this_o be_v such_o a_o haynouse_a deed_n that_o no_o other_o be_v comparable_a unto_o the_o same_o whereupon_o also_o in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o vinyarde_n which_o be_v let_v out_o unto_o the_o husband_n man_n in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o same_o it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o go_v about_o to_o kill_v the_o son_n which_o the_o father_n send_v unto_o they_o as_o the_o heir_n of_o the_o vinyarde_n 21.38_o mat._n 21.38_o furthermore_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o this_o place_n that_o the_o mind_n and_o purpose_n to_o do_v any_o work_n be_v account_v for_o the_o work_n itself_o yea_o if_o thou_o consider_v well_o the_o intent_n to_o do_v any_o evell_a thing_n be_v worse_a than_o the_o work_n itself_o and_o the_o intent_n to_o do_v any_o good_a work_n be_v better_a than_o the_o work_n itself_o itself_o intent_n to_o kill_v be_v worse_a they_o slauter_n itself_o better_a be_v the_o desy_a to_o do_v good_a to_o those_o that_o be_v in_o misery_n than_o the_o alm_n deed_n itself_o and_o the_o intent_n to_o kill_v be_v worse_a than_o the_o murder_n itself_o the_o alm_n deed_n may_v be_v so_o do_v that_o it_o may_v displease_v god_n concern_v the_o which_o read_v the_o first_o of_o mathewe_n a_o murderouse_a deed_n may_v be_v so_o do_v that_o it_o may_v please_v god_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o the_o levite_n in_o phineis_fw-la in_o jehu_n and_o so_o refuse_v that_o god_n may_v be_v displease_v for_o the_o not_o do_v of_o it_o as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o agag_n amalech_n who_o saul_n keep_v alive_a 20.42_o exod._n 32_o 29_o num._n 25.7_o 4._o kin._n 10._o 1._o kin._n 15_o 8._o 3._o king_n 20.42_o &_o in_o benadab_n king_n of_o asciria_n who_o achab_n send_v a_o way_n alive_a but_o the_o desire_n and_o intent_n to_o do_v good_a can_v displease_v god_n even_o as_o the_o desyer_n to_o kill_v can_v please_v he_o a_o man_n that_o have_v tell_v you_o the_o truth_n this_o our_o savioure_n christ_n add_v to_o show_v the_o wicked_a ingratitude_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o to_o make_v it_o open_o know_v that_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n because_o they_o be_v such_o swear_v and_o mortal_a enemy_n to_o true_a and_o wholesome_a doctrine_n this_o do_v not_o abraham_n m._n what_o do_v not_o abraham_n kill_v a_o man_n we_o read_v that_o he_o slay_v four_o king_n and_o deliver_v his_o kinsman_n lot_v out_o of_o their_o hand_n but_o the_o simple_a meaning_n of_o christ_n word_n be_v that_o abraham_n be_v not_o so_o cruel_a as_o to_o kill_v a_o innocent_a man_n 15_o gen._n 14_o 15_o and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o so_o unthankful_a as_o to_o kill_v one_o which_o instruct_v he_o in_o the_o truth_n and_o so_o wicked_a as_o to_o kill_v the_o ambassodoure_n of_o god_n as_o do_v his_o posterity_n 41_o you_o do_v the_o dede_n of_o your_o father_n then_o say_v they_o to_o he_o we_o be_v not_o bear_v of_o fornication_n we_o have_v on_o father_n even_o god_n m._n we_o may_v behold_v here_o great_a moderation_n in_o our_o savioure_n christ_n as_o yet_o he_o spare_v they_o not_o by_o and_o by_o open_o affirm_v that_o the_o devil_n be_v their_o father_n the_o which_o notwithstanding_o he_o afterward_o do_v when_o they_o do_v not_o only_o malapert_o say_v that_o they_o be_v the_o son_n of_o abraham_n but_o also_o the_o child_n of_o god_n let_v we_o also_o imitate_v this_o modesty_n that_o so_o long_o as_o it_o may_v be_v do_v with_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n we_o may_v spare_v the_o wicked_a and_o to_o take_v heed_n that_o we_o do_v not_o stir_v and_o move_v they_o so_o much_o as_o we_o may_v but_o rather_o let_v we_o with_o méekenesse_n instruct_v they_o if_o at_o any_o time_n it_o may_v please_v god_n to_o geve_v unto_o they_o repentance_n and_o grace_n to_o know_v and_o beeléeve_v the_o truth_n we_o be_v not_o bear_v of_o fornication_n bu_n these_o man_n still_o obstinate_o go_v forewarde_n to_o maintain_v their_o nobillitye_n special_o when_o they_o perceive_v by_o the_o order_n of_o christ_n word_n that_o he_o assign_v the_o devyll_n to_o be_v their_o father_n therefore_o now_o on_o the_o contrary_a part_n they_o do_v not_o only_o boast_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n but_o also_o the_o child_n of_o god_n c._n howbeit_o they_o account_v it_o all_o one_o thing_n to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n and_o the_o child_n of_o god._n but_o in_o this_o they_o do_v great_o err_v that_o they_o imagine_v god_n to_o be_v tie_v and_o bind_v to_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n for_o thus_o they_o reason_n god_n choose_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n to_o himself_o therefore_o see_v we_o come_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n we_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n now_o we_o see_v how_o they_o think_v that_o they_o receyve_v holiness_n even_o from_o their_o mother_n womb_n because_o they_o come_v of_o a_o holy_a stock_n moreover_o they_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n because_o they_o have_v their_o original_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n even_o as_o at_o this_o day_n the_o continual_a succession_n from_o the_o father_n do_v puff_n up_o the_o papist_n and_o make_v they_o too_o swell_v proud_a with_o such_o delusion_n satan_n beguile_v they_o that_o they_o may_v divide_v god_n from_o his_o word_n the_o church_n from_o the_o faith_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n from_o the_o spirit_n but_o if_o so_o be_v the_o answer_n of_o christ_n be_v available_a to_o refel_v the_o jew_n it_o be_v of_o no_o less_o force_n to_o convince_v they_o at_o this_o day_n for_o hypocrite_n will_v always_o falsefye_v the_o name_n of_o god_n but_o they_o shall_v never_o bring_v to_o pass_v but_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v account_v liar_n of_o such_o as_o lean_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o christ_n m._n we_o see_v here_o that_o the_o wicked_a adversaries_n of_o christ_n know_v well_o enough_o that_o the_o impiety_n of_o false_a worship_n be_v spiritual_a whoredom_n and_o that_o the_o same_o be_v filthy_a and_o to_o be_v detest_v of_o the_o
power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n which_o be_v most_o principal_a wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o such_o gross_a affection_n put_v a_o veil_n before_o her_o eyas_n 16._o jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o mary_n she_o turn_v herself_o and_o say_v unto_o he_o rabbony_n which_o be_v to_o say_v master_n c._n in_o that_o christ_n suffer_v mary_n to_o err_v for_o a_o short_a time_n it_o be_v profitable_a for_o we_o to_o confirm_v our_o faith_n but_o now_o with_o one_o word_n he_o revoke_v she_o from_o error_n m._n he_o say_v not_o i_o be_o he_o who_o thou_o seek_v for_o who_o sake_n thou_o wepe_v so_o much_o but_o he_o call_v she_o by_o her_o proper_a name_n as_o one_o familiar_a friend_n speak_v to_o another_o and_o that_o with_o such_o a_o voice_n as_o be_v best_a know_v unto_o the_o woman_n c._n at_o the_o first_o he_o speak_v unto_o she_o as_o a_o stranger_n but_o now_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o person_n of_o a_o master_n he_o speak_v unto_o she_o as_o to_o a_o disciple_n even_o as_o we_o hear_v before_o that_o a_o good_a shepherd_n call_v all_o the_o sheep_n of_o his_o flock_n by_o name_n 10.3_o john_n 10.3_o the_o voice_n therefore_o of_o this_o shepherd_n pierce_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o mary_n open_v her_o eye_n move_v all_o her_o sense_n &_o affect_v she_o forthwith_o to_o geve_v herself_o unto_o christ_n for_o she_o turn_v herself_o and_o say_v unto_o he_o rabboni_n m._n the_o evangelist_n in_o say_v that_o marie_n turn_v herself_o about_o again_o mean_v that_o she_o turn_v her_o face_n again_o to_o the_o sepulchre_n whither_o peradventure_o her_o heart_n be_v bend_v a._n for_o she_o have_v a_o fervent_a &_o unspeakable_a desire_n to_o find_v the_o lord_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o she_o hear_v and_o understand_v the_o voice_n of_o her_o shepeheard_n she_o biandby_o cry_v with_o great_a joy_n and_o admiration_n rabboni_n c._n thus_o in_o mary_n we_o have_v depaint_v to_o we_o the_o image_n of_o our_o call_n for_o this_o be_v our_o only_a entrance_n into_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n if_o so_o be_v he_o know_v we_o first_o and_o do_v familiarlye_o call_v we_o unto_o he_o not_o with_o that_o common_a voice_n which_o general_o sound_v in_o the_o ear_n of_o all_o man_n but_o by_o which_o he_o do_v special_o call_v those_o sheep_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o of_o the_o father_n hereupon_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v 4.9_o gal._n 4.9_o after_o that_o you_o know_v god_n yea_o rather_o be_v know_v of_o god_n and_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o word_n appear_v hereby_o that_o mary_n give_v biandby_o unto_o christ_n that_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o for_o the_o name_n of_o rabboni_n be_v not_o only_o honourable_a but_o contain_v also_o the_o profession_n of_o obedience_n therefore_o marye_n declare_v herself_o to_o be_v a_o disciple_n of_o christ_n and_o submit_v herself_o unto_o he_o as_o to_o a_o master_n this_o be_v a_o wonderful_a and_o secret_a conversion_n of_o man_n mind_n when_o god_n illuminate_v the_o same_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n make_v the_o same_o of_o blind_a sudden_o to_o see_v perfect_o the_o like_a example_n we_o have_v almost_o in_o the_o two_o disciple_n which_o be_v go_v to_o emaus_n a._n for_o when_o as_o at_o the_o first_o their_o eye_n be_v hold_v that_o they_o know_v not_o christ_n 24.30_o luk._n 24.30_o at_o the_o length_n when_o he_o take_v bread_n and_o bless_v and_o break_v the_o same_o their_o eye_n be_v open_v and_o they_o know_v he_o who_o before_o they_o judge_v to_o be_v a_o stranger_n c._n furthermore_o the_o example_n of_o marye_n ought_v to_o be_v a_o exhortation_n unto_o we_o that_o so_o many_o as_o christ_n call_v unto_o he_o do_v answer_v he_o present_o again_o without_o delay_n 17._o jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o touch_v i_o not_o for_o i_o be_o not_o yet_o ascend_v to_o my_o father_n but_o go_v to_o my_o brethren_n and_o say_v unto_o they_o i_o ascend_v unto_o my_o father_n &_o your_o father_n and_o to_o my_o god_n &_o your_o god_n b._n marry_o will_v have_v embrace_v christ_n for_o the_o exceed_v love_n &_o joy_n which_o she_o have_v because_o she_o see_v christ_n present_v again_o in_o the_o flesh_n but_o when_o the_o lord_n see_v that_o she_o wonder_v at_o his_o carnal_a presence_n more_o than_o be_v mete_v seek_v to_o lift_v up_o her_o mind_n to_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o to_o the_o embracing_n of_o faith_n forbid_v she_o to_o touch_v he_o say_v touch_v i_o not_o c._n notwithstanding_o this_o seem_v not_o to_o agree_v with_o the_o narration_n of_o matthew_n 28.9_o mat._n 28.9_o for_o he_o plain_o write_v that_o the_o woman_n embrace_v the_o foot_n of_o christ_n and_o see_v afterward_o he_o will_v have_v his_o disciple_n to_o handle_v and_o to_o feel_v he_o what_o cause_n be_v there_o why_o he_o shall_v forbid_v mary_n to_o touch_v he_o objection_n m._n for_o he_o say_v unto_o thomas_n bring_v hither_o thy_o finger_n and_o see_v my_o hand_n and_o put_v thy_o finger_n into_o my_o side_n and_o be_v not_o faithless_a but_o beleve_v c._n the_o solution_n hereof_o be_v very_o easy_a if_o so_o be_v we_o consider_v that_o the_o woman_n be_v not_o prohibit_v the_o touch_v of_o christ_n before_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v too_o busy_a and_o desirous_a to_o touch_v he_o answer_v for_o no_o doubt_n he_o do_v not_o forbid_v they_o to_o touch_v he_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o be_v needful_a to_o take_v away_o all_o doubt_n but_o when_o he_o see_v that_o they_o be_v to_o busy_a in_o imprace_v his_o foot_n he_o moderate_v and_o correct_v that_o rash_a zeal_n for_o they_o depend_v upon_o his_o corporal_a presence_n neither_o do_v they_o know_v any_o other_o way_n to_o enjoy_v he_o than_o if_o he_o dwell_v among_o they_o upon_o the_o earth_n m._n moreover_o because_o his_o disciple_n doubt_v whether_o he_o be_v true_o rise_v again_o or_o no_o and_o because_o the_o same_o which_o appear_v unto_o they_o be_v judge_v of_o they_o to_o be_v but_o a_o vision_n 24.37_o luk._n 24.37_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v believe_v the_o resurrection_n he_o say_v feel_v and_o see_v for_o a_o spirit_n have_v not_o flesh_n and_o bone_n as_o you_o see_v i_o have_v also_o thomas_n have_v say_v except_o i_o see_v the_o print_n of_o his_o nail_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o put_v my_o finger_n into_o the_o print_n of_o the_o nail_n and_o my_o hand_n into_o his_o side_n i_o will_v not_o believe_v therefore_o christ_n do_v very_o well_o in_o offer_v himself_o to_o be_v feel_v of_o he_o a._n but_o in_o marye_n there_o be_v no_o such_o doubt_v that_o there_o shall_v need_v any_o further_a feeling_n but_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o she_o shall_v come_v to_o a_o further_a faith_n and_o to_o more_o plain_a understanding_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n lest_o she_o shall_v abase_v he_o in_o cogitation_n more_o than_o there_o be_v cause_n c._n we_o must_v also_o note_v the_o reason_n which_o christ_n add_v for_o i_o be_o not_o yet_o ascend_v to_o my_o father_n for_o by_o these_o word_n he_o command_v the_o woman_n to_o suspend_v their_o affection_n until_o such_o time_n as_o he_o be_v ascend_v into_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o kingdom_n furthermore_o he_o show_v the_o faith_n of_o his_o resurrection_n not_o such_o a_o faith_n as_o they_o imagine_v to_o themselves_o as_o that_o when_o he_o be_v rise_v again_o he_o shall_v reign_v &_o triumph_n in_o the_o world_n but_o rather_o that_o by_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n he_o shall_v take_v possession_n of_o that_o kingdom_n which_o be_v promise_v unto_o he_o and_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n may_v govern_v the_o church_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n therefore_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o his_o word_n be_v that_o the_o state_n of_o his_o resurrection_n be_v not_o full_a and_o perfect_v until_o such_o time_n as_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v b._n think_v not_o because_o you_o see_v i_o present_v in_o the_o flesh_n that_o you_o have_v obtain_v the_o fruition_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n i_o say_v before_o unto_o my_o disciple_n that_o it_o be_v good_a for_o they_o that_o i_o shall_v go_v unto_o my_o father_n to_o who_o when_o i_o have_v ascend_v i_o will_v send_v my_o spirit_n the_o comforter_n and_o bring_v all_o thing_n to_o pass_v for_o they_o these_o thing_n you_o ought_v to_o look_v for_o and_o not_o to_o make_v such_o account_n of_o my_o corporal_a presence_n abstain_v therefore_o from_o this_o earnest_n touch_v lest_o you_o be_v to_o much_o addict_v to_o my_o carnal_a presence_n you_o ought_v hereafter_o to_o embrace_v i_o by_o faith_n reign_v in_o heaven_n c._n but_o this_o
son_n of_o god_n and_o truelye_o faith_n ought_v not_o to_o rest_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n only_o but_o to_o have_v also_o a_o respect_n to_o his_o power_n and_o office_n for_o it_o shall_v profit_v little_a to_o know_v who_o christ_n be_v except_o we_o know_v also_o how_o he_o will_v behave_v himself_o toward_o we_o and_o to_o what_o end_n he_o be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n but_o see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v most_o large_a question_v 17_o psal_n 2_o revela_fw-la 17_o in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o be_v call_v the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n why_o do_v nathanael_n call_v he_o only_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n surelye_o he_o do_v it_o answer_n answer_n because_o his_o confession_n be_v limit_v to_o the_o measure_n of_o faith_n for_o he_o have_v not_o profit_v so_o far_o as_o yet_o that_o he_o know_v he_o to_o be_v a_o king_n set_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n or_o rather_o that_o the_o child_n of_o abraham_n shall_v be_v gather_v from_o all_o place_n that_o the_o whole_a world_n may_v be_v the_o israel_n of_o the_o lord_n let_v we_o now_o by_o the_o example_n of_o nathanael_n exercise_v our_o faith_n in_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n and_o let_v we_o confirm_v the_o same_o by_o all_o mean_v possible_a and_o let_v it_o not_o lie_v hide_v but_o let_v it_o burst_v forth_o into_o the_o confession_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 50._o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o he_o because_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o i_o see_v thou_o under_o the_o fig_n tree_n thou_o believe_v thou_o shall_v see_v great_a thing_n than_o these_o b._n the_o lord_n jesus_n go_v about_o to_o confirm_v the_o faith_n of_o nathanael_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o disciple_n add_v these_o word_n c._n he_o do_v not_o reprehend_v nathanael_n as_o one_o to_o light_v of_o credit_n but_o rather_o allow_v his_o faith_n promise_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o the_o rest_n great_a argument_n of_o confirmation_n by_o the_o which_o word_n he_o lift_v up_o their_o hope_n for_o the_o behold_v and_o know_v of_o far_a matter_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o of_o so_o small_a beginning_n thou_o have_v receyve_v faith_n i_o bid_v thou_o be_v of_o good_a cheer_n and_o hope_v to_o see_v great_a matter_n in_o time_n to_o come_v it_o be_v but_o a_o mean_a token_n true_o of_o the_o divine_a power_n in_o that_o christ_n say_v here_o to_o nathanael_n i_o see_v thou_o under_o the_o fig_n tree_n for_o we_o read_v of_o many_o such_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v by_o heliseus_fw-la as_o in_o the_o story_n of_o gihesi_n and_o naaman_n the_o sirian_a 4_o 4._o king_n 5_o and._n 6_o john_n 4_o such_o a_o miracle_n be_v that_o which_o we_o read_v of_o concern_v the_o unlawful_a husband_n of_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n these_o and_o such_o like_a be_v but_o mean_a and_o indifferent_a thing_n if_o they_o be_v compare_v to_o those_o miracle_n which_o follow_v but_o such_o notwithstanding_o as_o have_v bring_v great_a increase_n of_o faith_n by_o little_a and_o little_a by_o these_o word_n also_o of_o christ_n because_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o i_o see_v thou_o under_o the_o fig_n tree_n thou_o believe_v we_o learn_v that_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v 10_o rom._n 10_o and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n 51._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o very_o verylye_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o hereafter_o shall_v you_o see_v heaven_n open_a and_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n ascend_v and_o descend_v upon_o the_o son_n of_o man_n a._n touch_v the_o open_n of_o the_o heaven_n it_o be_v already_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o saint_n matthew_n in_o that_o christ_n speak_v of_o the_o open_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o of_o the_o ascend_a and_o descend_v of_o the_o angel_n upon_o the_o son_n of_o man_n many_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o ascension_n and_o to_o the_o send_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n c._n but_o it_o rather_o signify_v a_o certain_a continuance_n which_o shall_v always_o be_v extant_a in_o his_o kingdom_n it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o angel_n appear_v sometime_o unto_o the_o disciple_n which_o at_o this_o day_n be_v not_o see_v it_o be_v certain_a also_o that_o there_o be_v another_o manner_n of_o revelation_n of_o the_o heavenlye_a glory_n when_o christ_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n than_o we_o now_o see_v but_o if_o we_o well_o way_n and_o consider_v of_o the_o matter_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o same_o which_o be_v do_v then_o be_v abide_v for_o ever_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v shut_v up_o against_o we_o at_o the_o first_o 24._o act_n 7_o math._n 17_o luke_n 24._o be_v trulye_o open_v again_o in_o christ_n of_o this_o matter_n as_o well_o stephen_n and_o three_o other_o disciple_n in_o the_o mount_n have_v a_o visible_a sight_n as_o also_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n but_o all_o the_o sign_n by_o the_o which_o the_o lord_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v present_a with_o we_o do_v pertain_v to_o the_o open_n of_o heaven_n special_o where_o he_o do_v communicate_v himself_o unto_o we_o to_o life_n the_o angel_n be_v say_v to_o ascend_v and_o descend_v as_o they_o be_v minister_n unto_o we_o of_o god_n will_n therefore_o by_o these_o word_n the_o mutual_a communication_n between_o god_n and_o man_n be_v note_v and_o we_o must_v be_v thankful_a unto_o christ_n for_o this_o benefit_n because_o without_o he_o there_o be_v rather_o mortal_a enmity_n between_o the_o angel_n and_o we_o than_o a_o familiar_a care_n to_o help_v therefore_o they_o be_v say_v to_o ascend_v and_o descend_v upon_o he_o not_o that_o they_o do_v only_o minister_v unto_o he_o but_o because_o in_o respect_n of_o he_o and_o for_o his_o honour_n they_o hold_v up_o by_o their_o care_n the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n 28_o gene._n 28_o and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o have_v some_o respect_n unto_o the_o ladder_n which_o be_v show_v to_o the_o patriarch_n jacob_n by_o a_o vision_n for_o the_o same_o which_o that_o vision_n shadow_v be_v truelye_o declare_v and_o show_v in_o christ_n to_o be_v short_a the_o sum_n of_o this_o place_n be_v that_o where_o as_o all_o mankind_n be_v banish_v from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n now_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v open_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v citizen_n with_o the_o saint_n and_o fellow_n with_o the_o angel_n and_o they_o be_v ordain_v to_o be_v keeper_n of_o our_o save_a health_n may_v come_v down_o from_o their_o bless_a rest_n to_o help_v our_o misery_n b._n for_o the_o service_n of_o angel_n pertain_v to_o all_o those_o that_o trust_v in_o the_o lord_n as_o well_o as_o unto_o christ_n according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o psalm_n 34_o psal_n 91._o and_o 34_o he_o have_v give_v his_o angel_n charge_v over_o thou_o etc._n etc._n for_o they_o be_v all_o minister_a spirit_n send_v to_o serve_v they_o which_o have_v their_o inheritance_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 1_o heb._n 1_o m._n so_o that_o now_o man_n with_o god_n and_o the_o earth_n with_o heaven_n be_v set_v at_o peace_n for_o so_o say_v the_o apostle_n it_o please_v the_o father_n that_o in_o he_o all_o fullness_n shall_v dwell_v and_o by_o he_o to_o reconcile_v all_o thing_n to_o himself_o 1_o collos_n 1_o and_o to_o set_v at_o peace_n through_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o cross_n by_o he_o both_o the_o thing_n in_o earth_n and_o thing_n in_o heaven_n ❧_o the_o second_o chapter_n 1._o and_o the_o third_o day_n there_o be_v a_o marriage_n in_o cana_n of_o galilee_n and_o the_o mother_n of_o jesus_n be_v there_o hitherto_o the_o evangelist_n have_v show_v how_o and_o in_o what_o order_n the_o revelation_n of_o christ_n begin_v to_o be_v manifest_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n and_o who_o they_o be_v which_o cleave_v unto_o he_o now_o consequentlye_o he_o add_v how_o by_o the_o light_n of_o miracle_n he_o begin_v part_o to_o confirm_v his_o disciple_n which_o as_o yet_o be_v but_o weak_a and_o part_o to_o reveal_v his_o glory_n to_o israel_n c._n for_o this_o story_n do_v contain_v a_o declaration_n of_o the_o first_o miracle_n that_o christ_n wrought_v and_o for_o that_o cause_n it_o become_v we_o to_o be_v the_o more_o diligent_a to_o consider_v of_o the_o same_o howbeit_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o there_o be_v other_o cause_n which_o do_v commend_v the_o same_o unto_o us._n m._n therefore_o the_o evangelist_n go_v about_o to_o describe_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v bring_v credit_n unto_o the_o history_n put_v down_o unto_o we_o both_o the_o time_n the_o place_n and_o
acceptable_a unto_o god_n m._n here_o we_o see_v that_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v profit_v the_o simple_a sort_n to_o instruction_n but_o to_o the_o other_o it_o geve_v matter_n of_o contradiction_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o sign_n and_o miracle_n of_o our_o savioure_n christ_n be_v set_v before_o all_o man_n eye_n to_o be_v see_v by_o the_o sight_n and_o diligent_a consideration_n whereof_o the_o elect_v beléeve_v on_o he_o b._n but_o the_o reprobate_n can_v behold_v nothing_o in_o christ_n but_o base_a and_o contemptible_a thing_n whereat_o they_o be_v offend_v 32._o the_o pharisee_v be_v hear_v that_o the_o people_n murmur_v such_o thing_n concern_v he_o and_o the_o phariseis_n and_o high_a priest_n send_v servant_n to_o take_v he_o m._n the_o more_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n do_v declare_v itself_o to_o the_o people_n the_o more_o the_o malice_n the_o spite_n and_o fury_n of_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr increase_v for_o the_o phariseis_n be_v appoint_v as_o scout_n to_o seek_v all_o occasion_n to_o suppress_v christ_n in_o the_o former_a place_n or_o room_n the_o evangelist_n name_v they_o alone_a after_o he_o join_v with_o they_o the_o high_a priest_n with_o who_o also_o they_o take_v part_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o as_o these_o phariseis_n be_v the_o most_o zealous_a observer_n of_o the_o law_n so_o be_v they_o the_o most_o zealous_a enemy_n of_o all_o other_o unto_o christ_n but_o because_o they_o be_v not_o able_a alone_a to_o oppress_v christ_n they_o refer_v the_o matter_n to_o the_o whole_a order_n of_o priesthood_n so_o that_o they_o which_o otherwise_o be_v enemy_n and_o at_o contention_n between_o themselves_o do_v now_o by_o the_o help_n of_o satan_n agree_v together_o and_o conspire_v among_o themselves_o against_o the_o son_n of_o god_n a._n even_o as_o we_o read_v of_o herode_fw-la and_o pilate_n when_o christ_n be_v bring_v before_o they_o to_o be_v judge_v 23.12_o luk._n 23.12_o for_o than_o they_o be_v make_v friend_n between_o who_o before_o there_o be_v hartburn_a and_o grudge_n bu_n and_o it_o great_o gréeve_v the_o high_a priest_n that_o the_o people_n neglect_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o phariseis_n and_o as_o it_o be_v despise_v those_o holy_a man_n follow_v christ_n and_o his_o doctrine_n which_o be_v quite_o repugnaunt_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o phariseis_n therefore_o the_o wicked_a jew_n mynd_v to_o stay_v this_o rumore_fw-la concern_v christe_o suborn_v public_a soldier_n which_o may_v bring_v he_o bind_v m._n in_o the_o which_o we_o may_v note_n the_o nature_n of_o wicked_a hypocrite_n at_o the_o first_o when_o they_o seek_v to_o kill_v christ_n they_o pretend_v the_o break_n of_o the_o sabbath_n when_o as_o notwithstanding_o the_o break_n of_o the_o sabbath_n do_v not_o offend_v they_o but_o the_o obscure_n of_o their_o own_o name_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o hear_v this_o rumoure_n of_o the_o people_n concern_v christ_n they_o be_v in_o such_o a_o rage_n that_o they_o go_v about_o open_o to_o lay_v violent_a hand_n on_o he_o so_o impiety_n somwhile_o seek_v to_o shed_v innocent_a blood_n privy_o but_o when_o it_o have_v not_o success_n than_o it_o open_o burst_v forth_o so_o saul_n at_o the_o first_o lie_v privy_o in_o wait_n to_o destroy_v david_n i●_n 1._o kin._n i8_n i●_n but_o when_o his_o rage_n be_v more_o hot_a he_o begin_v with_o open_a war_n and_o persecution_n to_o seek_v his_o death_n thus_o also_o be_v hypocrite_n wont_v to_o behave_v themselves_o who_o in_o the_o church_n seek_v not_o christ_n but_o either_o the_o estimation_n of_o their_o own_o name_n either_o gain_n either_o kingdom_n or_o else_o the_o impunity_n of_o offence_n who_o at_o the_o first_o pretend_v the_o zeal_n of_o god_n but_o be_v so_o mad_a at_o the_o last_o that_o all_o man_n may_v see_v what_o it_o be_v they_o look_v for_o and_o what_o offend_v they_o c._n moreover_o if_o so_o be_v the_o phariseis_n be_v so_o whoat_n &_o so_o careful_o diligent_a to_o defend_v the_o corrupt_a state_n of_o the_o church_n howmuche_o more_o vehement_a aught_o we_o to_o be_v in_o defend_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o madness_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v no_o less_o at_o this_o day_n to_o extinguish_v the_o gospel_n m._n last_o of_o all_o it_o appear_v how_o prepostourous_a the_o judgement_n and_o how_o perverse_a the_o counsel_n of_o the_o reprobate_n be_v the_o multitude_n murmur_n and_o christ_n be_v command_v to_o be_v take_v why_o do_v they_o not_o rather_o instruct_v the_o murmur_a multitude_n in_o the_o truth_n or_o reprehend_v they_o but_o this_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o world_n be_v void_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n after_o this_o manner_n the_o upper_a captain_n command_v paul_n to_o be_v carry_v up_o into_o the_o castle_n and_o bid_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v scourge_v and_o examine_v that_o he_o may_v know_v wherefore_o they_o cry_v so_o on_o he_o 22.24_o act_n 22.24_o whereas_o rather_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o those_o impudent_a dog_n which_o continual_o barck_v at_o the_o little_a flock_n of_o christ_n 33._o then_o say_v jesus_n unto_o they_o yet_o be_o i_o a_o little_a while_n with_o you_o and_o then_o go_v i_o unto_o he_o that_o send_v i_o bu_n when_o jesus_n know_v what_o they_o privilye_o go_v about_o he_o declare_v unto_o they_o in_o certain_a dark_a sentence_n boath_n that_o their_o conspiracy_n shall_v be_v vain_a and_o also_o that_o he_o will_v in_o a_o short_a time_n of_o his_o own_o free_a will_v offer_v up_o his_o body_n to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o so_o under_o a_o sertaine_a hide_a and_o dark_a speech_n he_o declare_v unto_o they_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o dispensation_n that_o he_o shall_v short_o dye_v after_o that_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o so_o to_o come_v from_o thence_o to_o judge_v his_o enemy_n c._n there_o be_v some_o which_o think_v these_o word_n to_o be_v speak_v to_o the_o asassemblye_o of_o people_n which_o be_v present_a and_o other_o some_o to_o the_o servant_n which_o be_v send_v to_o take_v christ_n but_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o christ_n proper_o speak_v to_o his_o enemy_n which_o seek_v his_o destruction_n for_o he_o deryde_v their_o practice_n because_o in_o vain_a they_o take_v they_o in_o hand_n until_o the_o time_n come_v which_o his_o father_n have_v decréeed_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v m._n i_o seem_v to_o you_o to_o be_v intolerable_a and_o therefore_o you_o seek_v with_o all_o your_o might_n and_o main_n to_o destroy_v i_o be_v quiet_a a_o while_n for_o i_o mean_v not_o to_o be_v with_o you_o very_o long_o r._n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o you_o shall_v be_v careful_a so_o take_v away_o my_o life_n lest_o i_o shall_v escape_v your_o hand_n for_o see_v i_o be_o so_o welcome_a unto_o you_o as_o smoke_n to_o your_o eye_n and_o thorn_n to_o your_o foot_n i_o mean_v not_o to_o trouble_v you_o with_o my_o presence_n any_o long_a time_n m._n only_o a_o little_a while_o i_o will_v be_v troublesome_a unto_o you_o r._n for_o i_o will_v go_v unto_o he_o that_o send_v i_o bu_n i_o will_v not_o flee_v from_o you_o but_o will_v willing_o offer_v myself_o to_o the_o death_n when_o the_o time_n shall_v come_v that_o by_o the_o cross_n and_o death_n i_o shall_v enter_v into_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n and_o shall_v possess_v the_o kingdom_n over_o all_o creature_n by_o these_o word_n he_o declare_v that_o neither_o his_o life_n nor_o his_o death_n be_v at_o their_o will_n but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o time_n appoint_v to_o he_o of_o his_o father_n ●i_fw-la luk._n 13.3_o ●i_fw-la which_o must_v needs_o be_v fulfil_v a._n even_o as_o he_o make_v answer_v to_o certain_a in_o another_o place_n go_v you_o and_o tell_v that_o fox_n behold_v i_o cast_v out_o deville_n and_o heal_v the_o people_n to_o day_n and_o to_o morrow_n and_o the_o third_o day_n i_o shall_v be_v perfect_v i_o go_v unto_o he_o that_o send_v i_o c._n by_o these_o word_n he_o declare_v that_o death_n can_v destroy_v he_o but_o rather_o that_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v put_v of_o his_o mortal_a body_n he_o will_v declare_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o the_o glorious_a triumph_n of_o his_o resurrection_n moreover_o hereupon_o be_v to_o be_v gather_v a_o general_a admonition_fw-la for_o christ_n be_v present_o with_o we_o so_o often_o as_o he_o call_v we_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n 2.17_o ephe._n 2.17_o for_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a call_v the_o dissension_n of_o christ_n unto_o us._n if_o so_o be_v we_o will_v take_v
heavenly_a father_n c._n hereby_o it_o appear_v how_o dull_a of_o understanding_n they_o be_v who_o mind_n satan_n possess_v there_o can_v be_v nothing_o more_o evident_a than_o for_o they_o to_o be_v cite_v before_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n but_o they_o be_v stark_o blind_a the_o which_o happen_v daily_o to_o other_o enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n m._n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n therefore_o if_o so_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n be_v not_o of_o many_o man_n easelye_o understand_v in_o matter_n of_o weight_n see_v we_o see_v here_o that_o the_o same_o happen_v to_o christ_n himself_o c._n nevertheless_o such_o blindness_n in_o man_n ought_v to_o make_v we_o afeard_a bu_n for_o such_o be_v the_o dull_a understanding_n of_o all_o those_o which_o bring_v not_o sincere_a mind_n to_o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n 28._o then_o say_v jesus_n unto_o they_o when_o you_o have_v lift_v up_o a_o high_a the_o son_n of_o man_n then_o shall_v you_o know_v that_o i_o be_o he_o and_o that_o i_o do_v nothing_o of_o myself_o but_o as_o my_o father_n have_v teach_v i_o evenso_fw-la i_o speak_v these_o thing_n when_o you_o have_v exalt_v m._n the_o lord_n know_v that_o whatsoever_o he_o speak_v or_o wrought_v do_v so_o little_a prevail_v with_o the_o unbeléeve_a jew_n that_o they_o neither_o beléeve_v nor_o know_v who_o he_o be_v and_o that_o they_o seek_v only_o to_o deliver_v he_o up_o to_o death_n as_o though_o by_o this_o detestable_a deed_n they_o shall_v great_o help_v their_o kingdom_n the_o which_o shall_v bring_v unto_o they_o undoubted_a destruction_n and_o that_o then_o especial_o it_o shall_v be_v manifest_a that_o they_o have_v wicked_o behave_v themselves_o towards_o the_o son_n of_o god_n this_o thing_n the_o lord_n threaten_v say_v then_o shall_v you_o know_v c._n as_o if_o you_o shall_v say_v all_o your_o sense_n be_v now_o as_o if_o they_o be_v bewitch_v and_o therefore_o you_o understande_v none_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o i_o speak_v but_o the_o time_n shall_v one_o day_n come_v when_o you_o shall_v know_v that_o a_o prophet_n of_o god_n be_v among_o you_o and_o speak_v with_o you_o m._n you_o bend_v yourselves_o whole_o to_o kill_v i_o and_o you_o think_v that_o all_o my_o doctrine_n and_o my_o name_n also_o may_v be_v suppress_v if_o i_o be_v slay_v but_o the_o contrary_n shall_v appear_v o_o miserable_a man_n you_o shall_v exalt_v and_o crucifye_v i_o but_o you_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o from_o obtain_v that_o which_o you_o look_v for_o that_o then_o you_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o have_v not_o lie_v unto_o you_o but_o that_o he_o be_v the_o very_a same_o who_o a_o little_a before_o you_o can_v not_o abide_v to_o know_v and_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n seam_n to_o contain_v a_o threaten_a either_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o happen_v after_o he_o be_v crucify_a as_o when_o the_o sun_n be_v darken_v the_o rock_n rend_v or_o else_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o happen_v after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o the_o send_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o wonderful_a work_n of_o god_n which_o then_o be_v do_v for_o than_o they_o be_v constrain_v whether_o they_o will_v or_o not_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o power_n of_o god_n so_o mighty_o show_v itself_o even_o as_o we_o read_v that_o they_o say_v what_o shall_v we_o do_v to_o these_o man_n for_o a_o manifest_a sign_n be_v do_v by_o they_o 4.16_o acts._n 4.16_o and_o be_v open_o know_v to_o all_o those_o that_o dwell_v in_o jerusalem_n and_o we_o can_v deny_v it_o but_o that_o it_o be_v noise_v no_o further_o among_o the_o people_n let_v we_o threaten_v and_o charge_v they_o that_o they_o speak_v henceforth_o to_o no_o man_n in_o this_o name_n c._n or_o else_o this_o commination_n may_v be_v extend_v further_o that_o by_o the_o same_o they_o may_v be_v precise_o call_v of_o christ_n to_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o the_o most_o high_a judg._n for_o so_o must_v the_o wicked_a contemner_n of_o god_n word_n be_v deal_v withal_o but_o this_o be_v to_o late_a and_o untimely_o a_o knowledge_n of_o the_o which_o christ_n here_o make_v mention_v when_o the_o wicked_a be_v draw_v to_o punishment_n do_v acknoweledg_n god_n against_o their_o will_n to_o be_v their_o judge_n who_o quiet_o they_o ought_v to_o reverence_v for_o he_o do_v not_o promise_n unto_o they_o repentance_n but_o pronounce_v that_o when_o they_o be_v strike_v with_o a_o new_a and_o unwonted_a horror_n sudden_o of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v be_v awake_v out_o of_o the_o sloth_n and_o securytye_n in_o the_o which_o they_o now_o sleep_v 3.7_o gen._n 3.7_o so_o adames_n eye_n be_v open_v insomuch_o that_o be_v ashamed_a he_o seek_v in_o vain_a to_o hide_v himself_o know_v that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o destruction_n howbeit_o that_o knowledge_n which_o adam_n have_v be_v of_o itself_o unprofitable_a by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n turn_v to_o his_o benefit_n but_o the_o reprobate_n be_v overwhelm_v with_o desperation_n have_v their_o eye_n open_v only_o to_o this_o end_n that_o they_o may_v behold_v their_o own_o destruction_n and_o god_n bring_v they_o to_o this_o kind_n of_o knowledge_n by_o diverse_a mean_n for_o oftentimes_o they_o be_v drive_v thereunto_o with_o scourge_n do_v learn_v that_o god_n be_v their_o enemy_n sometime_o use_v no_o torment_n he_o vex_v they_o in_o mind_n and_o oftentimes_o he_o suffer_v they_o to_o sleep_v until_o he_o take_v they_o quite_o and_o clean_o out_o of_o this_o world_n by_o these_o word_n lift_v up_o christ_n noat_v his_o death_n b._n for_o the_o jew_n lift_v up_o the_o lord_n when_o they_o think_v that_o they_o have_v give_v he_o the_o great_a fall_n by_o the_o most_o shameful_a death_n of_o the_o cross_n for_o by_o that_o death_n they_o end_v his_o servile_a and_o painful_a office_n that_o so_o the_o father_n may_v exalt_v his_o abase_v son_n to_o his_o right_a hand_n c._n for_o thereby_o afterward_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o christ_n ascend_v out_o of_o the_o sepulchre_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o which_o also_o we_o at_o this_o day_n must_v hope_v for_o for_o whatsoever_o the_o wicked_a take_v in_o hand_n to_o oppress_v christ_n in_o his_o doctrine_n and_o church_n shall_v not_o only_o appear_v in_o despite_n of_o their_o tooth_n but_o also_o he_o shall_v turn_v their_o wicked_a practice_n to_o the_o great_a furtherance_n of_o his_o kingdom_n that_o i_o be_o he_o this_o be_v not_o refer_v to_o the_o divine_a essence_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o to_o his_o office_n the_o which_o also_o do_v more_o evident_o appear_v by_o the_o order_n of_o the_o text_n where_o he_o deny_v himself_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n without_o the_o commandment_n of_o his_o father_n for_o this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o he_o be_v send_v of_o god_n and_o that_o he_o do_v faithful_o discharge_v his_o office_n a._n i_o do_v nothing_o of_o myself_o read_v the_o nineteen_o verse_n of_o the_o fifte_a chapter_n go_v before_o 29._o and_o he_o that_o send_v i_o be_v with_o i_o the_o father_n have_v not_o leave_v i_o alone_a for_o i_o do_v always_o those_o thing_n that_o please_v he_o c._n again_o he_o boast_v of_o god_n by_o who_o aid_n and_o help_v he_o do_v all_o thing_n and_o who_o never_o forsake_v he_o lest_o he_o shall_v labour_v in_o vain_a and_o without_o profit_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spyrite_n of_o god_n be_v join_v with_o his_o office_n it_o be_v meet_v that_o all_o godly_a teacher_n be_v endue_v with_o this_o trust_n and_o not_o to_o doubt_v but_o that_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n will_v be_v never_o unto_o they_o so_o that_o they_o with_o a_o pure_a conscience_n show_v themselves_o to_o be_v such_o minister_n as_o he_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v for_o god_n have_v not_o appoint_v they_o by_o his_o word_n to_o beat_v the_o air_n but_o by_o the_o secret_a efficacye_n of_o his_o spyrite_n he_o geve_v success_n unto_o his_o word_n and_o also_o defend_v they_o with_o his_o power_n that_o their_o enemy_n be_v put_v to_o the_o foil_n they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v against_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o if_o they_o consider_v themselves_o and_o their_o good_n they_o must_v needs_o fall_v everye_o hour_n therefore_o the_o only_a way_n to_o stand_v be_v if_o they_o be_v persuade_v that_o they_o be_v hold_v up_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n for_o i_o do_v always_o those_o thing_n m._n these_o word_n have_v a_o double_a understanding_n either_o to_o be_v understand_v that_o he_o say_v ▪_o that_o therefore_o the_o father_n have_v not_o leave_v he_o alone_a because_o he_o always_o do_v those_o
be_v encourage_v reverent_o to_o worship_n christ_n by_o these_o voice_n sound_v from_o heaven_n 49.10_o psal_n 2.12_o psal_n 96.8_o phil._n 2.10_o math._n 17.5_o gen._n 49.10_o kiss_v the_o son_n let_v all_o the_o angel_n worship_v he_o let_v every_o knee_n bow_n to_o he_o hear_v he_o the_o people_n shall_v be_v gaeher_v unto_o he_o 55._o and_o yet_o you_o have_v not_o know_v he_o but_o i_o know_v he_o and_o if_o i_o say_v i_o know_v he_o not_o i_o shall_v be_v a_o liar_n like_o unto_o you_o but_o i_o know_v he_o and_o keep_v he_o say_v m._n because_o he_o know_v that_o his_o adversary_n boast_v and_o brag_v of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n whenas_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v void_a of_o the_o same_o c._n he_o wre_v from_o they_o the_o false_a pretence_n of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n bu_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v as_o by_o false_a religion_n you_o worship_n god_n so_o you_o false_o challenge_v to_o yourselves_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o he_o be_v spiritual_a but_o you_o savoure_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v carnal_a c._n by_o this_o place_n we_o learn_v what_o be_v the_o lawful_a profession_n of_o faith_n namely_o that_o which_o procee_v from_o true_a knowledge_n and_o whereof_o come_v that_o knowledge_n but_o of_o the_o word_n therefore_o whosoever_o bo_v of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o do_v nothing_o else_o but_o lie_n but_o i_o know_v he_o christ_n oppose_v or_o set_v the_o trust_n of_o his_o conscience_n against_o the_o perverse_a péevishnesse_n of_o his_o adversary_n and_o thus_o ought_v all_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n to_o be_v mind_v and_o to_o hold_v themselves_o content_v with_o this_o that_o they_o have_v god_n on_o their_o side_n yea_o though_o the_o whoale_n world_n rise_v up_o against_o they_o thus_o invincible_a stand_v all_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n a_o gainste_n the_o terrible_a assault_n of_o the_o world_n but_o where_o the_o perfect_v knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v want_v nothing_o may_v stay_v and_o uphoulde_v us._n and_o if_o i_o say_v i_o know_v he_o not_o bu_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o be_o constrain_v to_o speak_v these_o thing_n with_o so_o great_a a_o oath_n c_o for_o the_o necessity_n of_o my_o office_n force_v i_o to_o speak_v because_o silence_n be_v a_o false_a betray_n of_o the_o truth_n a_o notable_a place_n by_o which_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o god_n do_v reveal_v himself_o unto_o we_o to_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v profess_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o heart_n with_o the_o mouth_n so_o often_o as_o need_n require_v and_o this_o ought_v not_o a_o little_a to_o terrify_v we_o that_o they_o which_o dissemble_v to_o please_v man_n and_o do_v either_o deny_v god_n truth_n or_o do_v counterfeit_v the_o same_o with_o wicked_a devise_n be_v not_o light_o reprehend_v but_o be_v send_v to_o the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n 56_o your_o father_n abraham_n be_v glad_a to_o see_v my_o day_n and_o see_v it_o and_o rejoice_v c._n now_o he_o make_v answer_v to_o that_o which_o they_o have_v object_v concern_v abraham_n and_o he_o grant_v to_o they_o in_o word_n only_o that_o which_o before_o he_o have_v deny_v namely_o that_o abraham_n be_v their_o father_n show_v that_o abraham_n be_v save_v by_o faith_n bv_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v you_o think_v that_o your_o father_n abraham_n be_v dead_a and_o i_o seem_v unto_o you_o to_o speak_v that_o which_o be_v wicked_a in_o affirm_v that_o they_o which_o keep_v my_o word_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o and_o never_o dye_v but_o i_o say_v true_o that_o abraham_n lyve_v and_o that_o all_o his_o life_n time_n he_o desire_v nothing_o more_o than_o to_o see_v my_o kingdom_n flourish_v he_o desyered_a i_o be_v absent_a and_o you_o despise_v i_o be_v present_a c._n that_o which_o christ_n speak_v hear_v of_o abraham_n alone_a belong_v to_o all_o the_o saint_n but_o yet_o this_o doctrine_n have_v more_o weight_n and_o force_n in_o the_o person_n of_o abraham_n because_o he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o whoale_n church_n this_o word_n daye_n in_o this_o place_n signify_v the_o time_n of_o chistes_n kingdom_n from_o the_o which_o christ_n have_v take_v upon_o he_o our_o flesh_n appear_v unto_o the_o world_n to_o fulfil_v the_o office_n of_o a_o redeemer_n some_o will_v have_v it_o to_o signify_v eternity_n and_o othersome_a the_o cross_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o place_n nothing_o disagréee_v with_o that_o where_o it_o be_v say_v many_o king_n and_o prophet_n desire_v to_o see_v those_o day_n which_o you_o see_v and_o have_v not_o see_v they_o because_o 10.24_o luk._n 10.24_o see_v faith_n in_o the_o behold_v of_o christ_n have_v his_o degréese_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o old_a prophet_n behold_v christ_n a_o far_o of_o even_o as_o he_o be_v promise_v unto_o they_o &_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o may_v not_o be_v see_v present_a as_o he_o reveal_v himself_o familiar_o to_o man_n when_o he_o descend_v from_o heaven_n let_v all_o the_o godly_a learn_fw-mi hear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o abraham_n to_o stay_v themselves_o upon_o christ_n alone_a and_o always_o to_o have_v respect_n unto_o he_o that_o they_o may_v have_v continual_a occasion_n of_o rejoice_v with_o a_o godly_a father_n 57_o then_o say_v the_o jew_n thou_o be_v not_o yet_o fifty_o year_n old_a and_o haste_v thou_o see_v abraham_n m._n the_o promise_n of_o god_n seem_v foolish_a to_o human_a reason_n the_o jew_n again_o according_a to_o their_o wont_a malice_n make_v no_o answer_n to_o those_o thing_n which_o concern_v themselves_o but_o be_v so_o give_v to_o cavil_n that_o they_o take_v hold_v only_o of_o those_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n which_o may_v have_v any_o show_n to_o serve_v their_o turn_n to_o cavil_n c._n they_o go_v about_o to_o confute_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n by_o a_o impossibility_n because_o he_o make_v himself_o equal_a in_o age_n to_o abraham_n which_o be_v dead_a many_o year_n before_o and_o he_o himself_o not_o yet_o fifty_o year_n of_o age_n for_o although_o christ_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o four_o and_o thirty_o year_n old_a yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o grant_v unto_o he_o mo_z year_n lest_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o deal_v with_o he_o to_o exact_o and_o precise_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v thou_o very_o can_v not_o make_v thyself_o so_o old_a that_o thou_o canst_v boa_v thyself_o to_o be_v fifty_o bu_n behold_v therefore_o thy_o great_a impudency_n in_o lie_v see_v all_o man_n know_v how_o that_o abraham_n die_v many_o year_n ago_o 58._o jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o before_o abraham_n be_v i_o be_o m._n that_o which_o the_o jew_n do_v false_o discredit_v as_o unreasonable_a and_o as_o a_o monsterouse_a lie_n christ_n himself_o constant_o mayntayn_v c._n and_o because_o the_o unbéeleve_n and_o carnal_a judge_v after_o the_o aspect_n and_o apperaunce_n only_o he_o put_v they_o here_o in_o mind_n that_o he_o have_v somewhat_o great_a and_o high_a than_o human_a show_n and_o reason_n the_o which_o be_v hide_v from_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v behold_v with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n only_o therefore_o by_o these_o word_n christ_n exempt_v himself_o from_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o man_n and_o challenge_v to_o himself_o a_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a power_n the_o sense_n and_o feel_v whereof_o have_v be_v shed_v forth_o upon_o all_o age_n even_o from_o the_o béegin_n of_o the_o world_n also_o this_o place_n agréeeth_n with_o that_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n christ_n yesterdaye_v to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o 13.8_o heb._n 13.8_o for_o he_o be_v know_v to_o be_v a_o mediatoure_n from_o the_o begin_n in_o who_o god_n the_o father_n shall_v be_v please_v in_o that_o notwithstanding_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o mediator_n have_v be_v show_v forth_o in_o all_o age_n this_o depend_v upon_o his_o eternal_a divinity_n so_o that_o this_o say_n of_o christ_n contain_v a_o notable_a commendation_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n chr._n and_o the_o verb_n of_o the_o present_a tense_n or_o time_n make_v it_o of_o the_o more_o weight_n for_o it_o signify_v that_o the_o same_o state_n be_v equal_a &_o alike_o from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n b_o therefore_o that_o which_o he_o say_v here_o signify_v the_o same_o 1.1_o john_n 1.1_o that_o this_o place_n do_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n 59_o then_o take_v they_o up_o stone_n to_o cast_v at_o he_o but_o jesus_n hide_v himself_o and_o go_v out_o of_o the_o tempell_a m._n they_o perceive_v that_o the_o lord_n speak_v that_o of_o himself_o which_o as_o it_o be_v not_o human_a so_o it_o set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o divinity_n and_o therefore_o to_o make_v he_o to_o
always_o then_o have_v a_o consideration_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o there_o be_v no_o true_a consolation_n any_o where_o else_o in_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n bu_n for_o it_o be_v a_o glorious_a thing_n for_o christ_n sake_n and_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n to_o be_v in_o peril_n to_o be_v hate_v of_o man_n and_o to_o suffer_v persecution_n again_o it_o be_v a_o foul_a thing_n to_o be_v afflict_v for_o evyll_n do_v for_o therefore_o say_v the_o apostle_n peter_n see_v that_o none_o of_o you_o be_v punish_v as_o a_o murderer_n or_o as_o a_o thief_n or_o a_o evyll_n doer_n or_o as_o a_o busy_a body_n in_o other_o man_n matter_n if_o any_o man_n suffer_v as_o a_o christian_a man_n let_v he_o not_o be_v ashamed_a but_o let_v he_o glorifye_v god_n on_o this_o behalf_n for_o hereuppon_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v move_v to_o geve_v god_n thanks_n because_o when_o the_o world_n perrish_v in_o his_o own_o blindness_n god_n geve_v his_o light_n unto_o the_o faithful_a even_o as_o the_o palpable_a darkness_n compass_v the_o egyptian_n round_n about_o when_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n be_v in_o the_o manifest_a light_n also_o we_o must_v note_n that_o the_o hatred_n of_o christ_n come_v for_o want_v of_o understanding_n when_o god_n be_v not_o know_v for_o unbeléefe_n be_v always_o blind_a not_o that_o the_o wicked_a understande_v nor_o know_v nothing_o but_o because_o all_o their_o knowledge_n be_v confound_v and_o sodainlye_o vanish_v away_o for_o my_o name_n sake_n m._n here_o let_v we_o consider_v what_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o god_n and_o the_o world_n before_o god_n those_o thing_n which_o the_o apostle_n ask_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n they_o receive_v before_o the_o world_n the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o apostle_n be_v hate_v both_o these_o the_o apostle_n feel_v and_o after_o they_o the_o true_a minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n because_o they_o have_v not_o know_v he_o that_o send_v i_o cyr._n by_o this_o word_n send_v be_v ment_fw-la the_o whoar_n mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n bu_n and_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o boath_n the_o father_n and_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n be_v unknowen_a when_o his_o name_n be_v odiouse_a by_o who_o the_o father_n be_v know_v and_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o sendinge_a understand_v m._n but_o who_o send_v christ_n god_n the_o father_n therefore_o the_o high_a preiste_n scribe_n and_o phariseis_n know_v not_o god_n they_o can_v not_o know_v the_o father_n because_o they_o know_v not_o the_o son_n who_o he_o have_v send_v r._n they_o brag_v of_o god_n and_o boast_v that_o they_o be_v the_o true_a worshipper_n of_o god_n but_o they_o know_v not_o god_n for_o he_o which_o will_v know_v god_n must_v know_v he_o by_o his_o word_n and_o not_o by_o his_o own_o imagination_n and_o dream_n 3.1_o i._o john_n 3.1_o m._n even_o so_o before_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o you_o neither_o know_v i_o nor_o my_o father_n if_o you_o have_v know_v i_o you_o will_v have_v know_v my_o father_n also_o see_v therefore_o the_o world_n be_v ignorant_a of_o god_n it_o ought_v not_o to_o seem_v strange_a if_o so_o be_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v odiouse_a unto_o the_o childeren_n of_o this_o world_n and_o if_o for_o his_o sake_n the_o faithful_a be_v make_v a_o mock_a stock_n but_o let_v this_o say_n of_o saint_n john_n comfort_v they_o behold_v what_o love_n the_o father_n have_v bestow_v on_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o this_o cause_n the_o world_n know_v we_o not_o because_o it_o know_v not_o he_o what_o be_v christ_n i_o pray_v you_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n the_o father_n but_o mere_a blasphemy_n and_o what_o be_v the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o superstitiouse_a people_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n the_o unbelever_n and_o wise_a man_n of_o this_o world_n have_v make_v they_o always_o a_o jest_a stock_n but_o concern_v the_o ignorance_n of_o god_n in_o the_o jew_n read_v in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n go_v before_o and_o the_o twenty_o eight_o verse_n 22._o if_o i_o have_v not_o come_v and_o speak_v unto_o they_o they_o shall_v have_v have_v no_o sin_n but_o now_o have_v they_o nothing_o to_o cloak_n their_o sin_n withal_o m._n he_o seem_v to_o excuse_v the_o unbeléefe_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o also_o their_o hatred_n which_o they_o bear_v against_o he_o and_o his_o disciple_n by_o this_o that_o he_o say_v but_o all_o these_o thing_n shall_v they_o do_v unto_o you_o for_o my_o name_n sake_n because_o they_o have_v not_o know_v he_o who_o have_v send_v i_o as_o though_o they_o have_v not_o do_v all_o thing_n of_o malice_n but_o of_o ignorance_n for_o this_o cause_n he_o add_v these_o word_n c._n least_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o this_o serve_v to_o excuse_v their_o salt_n and_o he_o show_v that_o they_o be_v maliciouslye_o blind_a evena_n if_o a_o man_n shall_v shut_v his_o eye_n that_o he_o may_v not_o be_v constrain_v to_o see_v the_o light_n for_o otherwise_o it_o may_v have_v be_v object_v unto_o christ_n if_o so_o be_v they_o know_v not_o thy_o father_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v th●t_o thou_o do_v not_o remedy_n their_o erroure_n why_o dyddest_n thou_o not_o prove_v whether_o they_o wear_v unapte_v to_o be_v teach_v you_o or_o no_o he_o answer_v that_o he_o have_v do_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o good_a and_o faithful_a teacher_n but_o without_o profit_n because_o malice_n will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o come_v unto_o a_o sound_n mind_n bu_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o i_o have_v not_o come_v and_o have_v so_o expresselye_o and_o plain_o open_v unto_o they_o the_o misterye_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o counsel_n and_o love_n of_o my_o father_n they_o shall_v have_v have_v no_o sin_n but_o now_o see_v i_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v descend_v from_o heaven_n and_o have_v expound_v all_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n kingdom_n and_o they_o themselves_o have_v hear_v and_o understand_v all_o thing_n and_o yet_o will_v neither_o know_v nor_o understande_v they_o it_o can_v seem_v ignorance_n which_o be_v malicious_a obstinacy_n and_o most_o wicked_a contempt_n of_o the_o know_a truth_n c._n in_o these_o word_n also_o chrr_v seem_v to_o affirm_v that_o only_a unbelief_n be_v sin_n and_o there_o be_v some_o which_o so_o think_v for_o because_o faith_n remit_v and_o wipe_v away_o all_o sin_n they_o say_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o sin_n of_o unbeléefe_n which_o damn_v this_o be_v true_o speak_v because_o unbeléefe_n do_v not_o only_o keep_v man_n from_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o desert_n of_o condemnation_n but_o also_o be_v the_o well_o spring_n and_o cause_n of_o all_o evels_n but_o all_o that_o disputation_n appertain_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o this_o present_a place_n for_o the_o name_n of_o sin_n be_v not_o take_v general_o but_o for_o the_o circomstaunce_n of_o the_o cause_n in_o hand_n as_o if_o christ_n shall_v have_v say_v that_o their_o ignorance_n be_v inexcusable_a because_o they_o have_v malicious_o reject_v god_n in_o his_o person_n evena_n if_o we_o shall_v call_v he_o guiltless_a just_a and_o pure_a who_o we_o will_v absolve_v from_o one_o only_a fault_n of_o the_o which_o he_o be_v guilty_a therefore_o this_o absolution_n of_o christ_n be_v restrain_v to_o one_o kind_n of_o sin_n because_o he_o take_v from_o the_o jew_n the_o pretence_n of_o ignorance_n in_o the_o contempt_n and_o hatred_n of_o the_o gospel_n notwithstanding_o there_o arise_v yet_o a_o new_a question_n as_o thus_o be_v not_o the_o unbeléefe_n which_o be_v before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n sufficient_a to_o condemn_v man_n and_o they_o be_v mad_a man_n which_o gather_v amiss_o of_o this_o place_n that_o whosoever_o die_v before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n without_o faith_n be_v in_o a_o doubtful_a case_n until_o such_o time_n as_o christ_n manifest_v himself_o unto_o they_o as_o though_o there_o be_v not_o many_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o testify_v that_o the_o only_a testimony_n of_o conscience_n be_v sufficient_a for_o they_o to_o condemnation_n 14_z rom._n 5_o 14_z death_n say_v saint_n paul_n rain_v in_o the_o world_n until_o moses_n 12_z rom._n 2_o 12_z and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v that_o they_o shall_v perish_v without_o law_n which_o have_v sin_v without_o the_o law_n what_o then_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v in_o these_o word_n a_o concession_n or_o grant_v because_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o jew_n have_v now_o nothing_o any_o more_o to_o excuse_v their_o fault_n withal_o see_v that_o witting_o &_o willing_o they_o have_v reject_v the_o life_n offer_v unto_o they_o and_o
haste_v love_v i_o for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a christ_n which_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v well-beloved_a furthermore_o the_o heavenly_a father_n love_v all_o the_o member_n with_o the_o same_o love_n with_o the_o which_o he_o have_v love_v the_o church_n that_o he_o may_v love_v no_o man_n but_o in_o christ_n but_o for_o this_o read_v more_o in_o the_o .3.14_o and_o .16_o chapter_n before_o 24._o father_n i_o will_v that_o they_o which_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o be_v with_o i_o where_o i_o be_o that_o they_o may_v see_v my_o glory_n which_o for_o thou_o haste_v give_v i_o thou_o love_v i_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n m._n whereas_o christ_n say_v here_o to_o his_o father_n i_o will_v it_o be_v not_o speak_v commaund_o but_o in_o the_o way_n of_o petition_n c._n for_o i_o will_v in_o this_o place_n be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o i_o desire_v notwithstanding_o there_o may_v be_v double_a understanding_n in_o the_o same_o either_o that_o he_o will_v have_v his_o disciple_n to_o enjoy_v his_o external_a presence_n or_o else_o that_o god_n will_v bring_v they_o at_o the_o last_o into_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n whither_o he_o go_v before_o thus_o to_o see_v the_o glory_n some_o expound_v to_o have_v the_o participation_n of_o that_o glory_n which_o christ_n have_v other_o some_o to_o feel_v with_o the_o sense_n of_o faith_n what_o christ_n be_v &_o how_o great_a his_o majesty_n be_v also_o but_o all_o thing_n well_o weigh_v &_o consider_v we_o must_v believe_v that_o christ_n speak_v of_o the_o perfect_v blessedness_n of_o the_o godly_a as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o his_o prayer_n and_o petition_n be_v not_o grant_v until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v receive_v up_o into_o heaven_n unto_o he_o thus_o we_o must_v understand_v the_o sight_n of_o his_o glory_n they_z then_o see_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n when_o he_o be_v present_a with_o they_o even_o as_o if_o man_n shall_v see_v a_o small_a light_n shine_v through_o the_o narrow_a chink_n or_o crack_n of_o a_o ●oore_a or_o wall_n when_o they_o be_v shut_v into_o a_o dark_a place_n now_o christ_n wishet_n that_o they_o may_v profit_v so_o long_o until_o they_o enjoy_v the_o perfect_v light_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n in_o effect_n he_o pray_v that_o the_o father_n will_v bring_v they_o forward_o more_o &_o more_o until_o such_o time_n as_o he_o bring_v they_o unto_o the_o full_a sight_n of_o his_o glory_n m._n by_o this_o place_n we_o see_v what_o manner_n of_o prayer_n it_o be_v which_o christ_n make_v namely_o no_o uncertain_a or_o doubtful_a prayer_n but_o a_o assure_a and_o faithful_a prayer_n too_o obtain_v that_o which_o he_o ask_v c._n when_o he_o add_v for_o thou_o love_v i_o before_o the_o beeginning_n it_o do_v far_o better_o agree_v with_o the_o person_n of_o the_o mediator_n than_o with_o the_o bare_a devinitie_n of_o christ_n a._n by_o this_o place_n we_o gather_v that_o the_o faithful_a be_v out_o of_o peril_n see_v they_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o glory_n with_o the_o which_o christ_n be_v endue_v of_o the_o father_n for_o the_o head_n be_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o member_n r._n therefore_o whether_o the_o faithful_a be_v in_o death_n or_o in_o life_n they_o be_v with_o christ_n whereupon_o the_o prophet_n say_v if_o i_o walk_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n i_o will_v fear_v none_o ill_o because_o thou_o be_v with_o i_o 25._o o_o righteous_a father_n the_o world_n also_o have_v not_o know_v thou_o but_o i_o have_v know_v thou_o and_o these_o have_v know_v that_o thou_o haste_v send_v i_o m._n again_o he_o commend_v in_o his_o disciple_n the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n the_o father_n the_o which_o he_o manifest_v unto_o they_o of_o this_o he_o speak_v before_o and_o here_o he_o repeat_v the_o same_o again_o discern_v his_o disciple_n from_o this_o world_n and_o accuse_v the_o world_n in_o this_o that_o the_o same_o know_v not_o god_n the_o father_n c._n therefore_o of_o right_n christ_n of_o a_o singular_a affection_n commend_v his_o disciple_n who_o the_o unbelief_n of_o the_o world_n do_v not_o hinder_v from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n m._n the_o like_a sentence_n almost_o thou_o haste_v before_o in_o these_o word_n and_o you_o have_v not_o know_v he_o but_o i_o have_v know_v he_o also_o it_o agree_v with_o the_o .8_o verse_n of_o this_o chapter_n c._n in_o call_v the_o father_n righteous_a he_o condemn_v the_o world_n and_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o same_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v although_o the_o world_n do_v proud_o despise_v and_o reject_v god_n yet_o not_o withstand_v he_o lose_v nothing_o thereby_o but_o remain_v still_o as_o glorious_a a_o god_n and_o a_o righteous_a as_o he_o be_v before_o by_o which_o word_n he_o teach_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o godly_a aught_o to_o be_v so_o found_v in_o god_n that_o though_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v fall_v yet_o the_o same_o shall_v never_o shake_v also_o we_o must_v note_v the_o order_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v here_o describe_v the_o son_n only_o which_o come_v forth_o of_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n do_v proper_o know_v the_o father_n therefore_o all_o they_o which_o desire_v to_o come_v unto_o god_n must_v of_o necessity_n receive_v christ_n which_o come_v to_o meet_v they_o and_o must_v whole_o addicte_n themselves_o unto_o he_o and_o he_o when_o he_o be_v know_v will_v at_o the_o last_o bring_v his_o disciple_n to_o god_n the_o father_n 26._o and_o i_o have_v declare_v unto_o they_o thy_o name_n and_o will_v declare_v it_o that_o the_o love_n wherewith_o thou_o haste_v love_v i_o may_v be_v in_o they_o and_o i_o in_o they_o m._n by_o this_o place_n it_o do_v appear_v that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n name_n be_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o dispensation_n and_o mediation_n of_o christ_n by_o which_o he_o be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o mediator_n send_v into_o this_o world_n c._n when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v manifest_v unto_o they_o his_o father_n name_n he_o mean_v that_o he_o have_v do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o teacher_n but_o yet_o that_o he_o use_v not_o only_o the_o sound_n of_o a_o voice_n but_o also_o the_o secret_a revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o manifest_v the_o father_n and_o because_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o disciple_n be_v as_o yet_o but_o weak_a he_o promise_v with_o all_o increase_v of_o this_o knowledge_n b._n for_o we_o must_v here_o continual_o increase_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n c._n and_o thus_o he_o prepare_v they_o to_o hope_v for_o more_o large_a knowledge_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n also_o although_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o apostle_n yet_o we_o may_v gather_v thereby_o a_o general_a exhortation_n that_o we_o may_v study_v daily_o to_o profit_n and_o not_o to_o think_v that_o we_o have_v run_v so_o well_o but_o that_o there_o remain_v yet_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o our_o race_n so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v in_o this_o flesh_n m._n wherefore_o let_v we_o seek_v for_o the_o increase_n of_o this_o knowledge_n of_o god_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o christ_n the_o perfection_n whereof_o we_o shall_v have_v at_o the_o last_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v that_o the_o love_n wherewith_o thou_o have_v love_v i_o c._n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o thou_o may_v love_v they_o in_o i_o or_o else_o that_o the_o love_n wherewith_o thou_o have_v love_v i_o may_v also_o extend_v itself_o unto_o they_o for_o the_o love_n wherewith_o god_n love_v we_o too_o speak_v proper_o be_v even_o the_o very_a same_o with_o the_o which_o he_o love_v his_o son_n from_o the_o beeginning_n that_o in_o he_o he_o may_v make_v we_o acceptable_a to_o himself_o and_o very_o in_o respect_n of_o ourselves_o we_o be_v odious_a unto_o god_n without_o christ_n but_o they_o he_o begin_v to_o love_v we_o when_o we_o begin_v to_o grow_v into_o the_o body_n of_o his_o welbeeloved_a son_n this_o be_v a_o unspeakable_a privilege_n when_o we_o know_v that_o chryste_n be_v belove_v of_o his_o father_n for_o our_o sake_n that_o we_o may_v be_v for_o ever_o partaker_n of_o the_o same_o love_n m._n we_o must_v note_v also_o that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n do_v bring_v we_o into_o this_o wonderful_a fellowship_n of_o god_n love_n c._n but_o we_o must_v note_v these_o word_n and_o i_o in_o they_o by_o which_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o we_o be_v no_o otherwise_o comprehend_v in_o that_o love_n of_o the_o which_o he_o speak_v than_o if_o christ_n do_v dwell_v in_o us._n for_o as_o the_o father_n can_v not_o behold_v the_o son_n but_o he_o must_v have_v before_o his_o eye_n his_o whole_a body_n even_o so_o if_o we_o will_v have_v he_o to_o behold_v we_o
error_n he_o make_v he_o the_o son_n of_o joseph_n and_o also_o a_o nazarite_n by_o birth_n both_o which_o be_v very_o false_a and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o because_o he_o sincerelye_o desire_v to_o profit_v his_o brother_n and_o to_o reveal_v christ_n this_o his_o diligence_n be_v accept_v of_o god_n and_o he_o have_v also_o prosperous_a success_n for_o true_o every_o man_n must_v endeavour_n himself_o sober_o to_o abide_v within_o his_o bound_n and_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o the_o evangelist_n make_v mention_n of_o this_o thing_n as_o though_o it_o be_v worthy_a of_o praise_n in_o philip_n that_o twice_o he_o enform_v and_o falselye_o report_v of_o christ_n but_o his_o doctrine_n be_v commend_v of_o he_o to_o be_v profitable_a how_o corrupt_a and_o erroneous_a soever_o it_o be_v because_o it_o tend_v to_o this_o end_n to_o reveal_v christ_n foolish_o he_o call_v jesus_n the_o son_n of_o joseph_n and_o ignoraunt_o he_o make_v he_o a_o nazarite_n notwithstanding_o he_o appli_v this_o to_o no_o other_o than_o to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o be_v bear_v at_o bethlehem_n neither_o do_v he_o make_v a_o counterfayte_n christ_n but_o will_v only_o have_v he_o know_v to_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n have_v foreshow_v we_o do_v see_v therefore_o that_o this_o be_v the_o special_a point_n in_o doctrine_n namely_o that_o by_o all_o mean_v they_o which_o hear_v we_o may_v come_v unto_o christ_n this_o place_n also_o teach_v we_o not_o disdainful_o to_o reject_v that_o which_o simple_a and_o unlearned_a man_n bring_v unto_o we_o concern_v christ_n though_o it_o be_v not_o so_o apt_o allege_v if_o so_o be_v they_o direct_v we_o unto_o christ_n but_o lest_o we_o be_v draw_v away_o by_o the_o false_a imagination_n of_o man_n from_o christ_n we_o have_v always_o this_o remedy_n at_o hand_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o seek_v for_o the_o pure_a knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n out_o of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n b._n and_o in_o that_o that_o philip_n say_v unto_o nathanael_n we_o have_v find_v he_o of_o who_o moses_n the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n do_v write_v we_o may_v conjecture_v that_o nathanael_n be_v studious_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o have_v diligent_o search_v in_o they_o for_o the_o come_n and_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n 46._o and_o nathanael_n say_v unto_o he_o can_v there_o any_o good_a thing_n come_v out_o of_o nazareth_n philip_n say_v unto_o he_o come_v and_o see_v can_v there_o any_o good_a thing_n come_v out_o of_o nazareth_n r._n nathanael_n be_v offend_v at_o the_o baseness_n of_o the_o place_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n which_o be_v always_o offend_v at_o abject_a thing_n because_o it_o always_o aspire_v to_o high_a and_o great_a thing_n but_o god_n hide_v his_o excellent_a work_n under_o a_o base_a form_n and_o show_v that_o he_o may_v be_v wonderful_a in_o his_o work_n c._n this_o godly_a man_n be_v at_o the_o first_o offend_v with_o the_o unaduised_a and_o rash_a talk_n of_o philip_n for_o that_o which_o he_o foolish_o think_v this_o man_n certain_o believe_v beside_o this_o by_o the_o hatred_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o place_n he_o have_v conceive_v a_o wrong_a judgement_n in_o like_a manner_n except_o we_o take_v heed_n diligent_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v without_o the_o same_o danger_n for_o trulye_a satan_n daily_o go_v about_o to_o stay_v we_o with_o the_o like_a let_v from_o come_v to_o christ_n for_o he_o seek_v diligent_o to_o have_v many_o lie_n spread_v abroad_o which_o may_v make_v we_o either_o hate_n the_o gospel_n or_o suspect_v the_o same_o that_o we_o may_v fear_v to_o taste_v thereof_o there_o be_v yet_o another_o stumble_a block_n which_o he_o laith_v in_o our_o way_n and_o that_o be_v to_o make_v christ_n seem_v contemptible_a unto_o us._n for_o we_o do_v see_v what_o a_o great_a offence_n to_o many_o the_o baseness_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v the_o which_o appear_v as_o well_o in_o christ_n the_o head_n as_o also_o in_o his_o member_n m._n nathanael_n therefore_o have_v regard_n to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n which_o foreshow_v that_o christ_n shall_v be_v bear_v in_o bethleem_n and_o not_o in_o nazareth_n demand_v whether_o any_o good_a thing_n can_v come_v out_o of_o nazareth_n 5_o mich._n 5_o so_o some_o in_o the_o company_n of_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr say_v shall_v christ_n come_v forth_o of_o galilee_n do_v not_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o he_o shall_v come_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n and_o out_o of_o the_o city_n of_o bethlehem_n come_v and_o see_v b._n 7_o john_n 7_o when_o philip_n be_v not_o able_a to_o resolve_v this_o doubt_n he_o bid_v he_o come_v and_o see_v m._n for_o he_o answer_v nothing_o to_o the_o demand_n of_o nathanael_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v go_v with_o he_o to_o christ_n and_o see_v the_o which_o notable_a counsel_n andrew_n also_o use_v before_o when_o he_o bring_v his_o brother_n simon_n to_o jesus_n for_o these_o two_o andrew_n and_o philip_n have_v so_o great_a experience_n in_o the_o force_n &_o virtue_n of_o the_o divine_a power_n of_o christ_n that_o with_o good_a and_o assure_a trust_n they_o desire_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v hear_v of_o man_n be_v certify_v that_o it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o if_o any_o hear_v he_o they_o shall_v have_v so_o great_a experience_n of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o afterward_o they_o shall_v feel_v no_o doubt_v in_o they_o b._n therefore_o nathanael_n have_v so_o great_a a_o desire_n to_o the_o truth_n that_o out_o of_o hand_n he_o follow_v philippe_n to_o jesus_n although_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n which_o philip_n have_v show_v and_o hereby_o he_o get_v straight_o way_n the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o lord_n c._n for_o he_o suffer_v his_o double_a error_n by_o this_o invitation_n of_o philippe_n to_o be_v correct_v even_o so_o by_o his_o example_n let_v we_o show_v ourselves_o tractable_a and_o ready_a to_o be_v teach_v let_v we_o not_o also_o refuse_v to_o inquyre_v and_o search_v see_v christ_n be_v always_o ready_a to_o ease_v we_o of_o those_o doubt_n that_o trouble_v us._n and_o if_o at_o any_o time_n our_o objection_n can_v not_o be_v satisfy_v let_v we_o not_o yet_o condemn_v that_o which_o be_v offer_v unto_o we_o and_o seasse_v to_o seek_v any_o far_a for_o the_o truth_n 47._o jesus_n see_v nathanael_n come_v to_o he_o and_o say_v of_o he_o behold_v a_o right_a israelite_n in_o who_o be_v no_o guile_n m._n nathanael_n be_v not_o of_o their_o crew_n which_o condemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o truth_n before_o they_o hear_v or_o know_v the_o same_o and_o by_o obstinate_a impiety_n can_v not_o abide_v to_o hear_v the_o same_o such_o be_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisées_fw-fr of_o the_o jew_n and_o that_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o nicodemus_n note_v do_v our_o law_n say_v he_o judge_v any_o man_n before_o it_o hear_v he_o 7_o john_n 7_o and_o know_v what_o he_o have_v do_v such_o be_v the_o judge_n and_o bishop_n at_o this_o day_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n which_o very_o rash_o reject_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n &_o condemn_v and_o persecute_v the_o same_o and_o say_v of_o he_o behold_v a_o right_n c._n in_o that_o christ_n praise_v nathanael_n he_o do_v it_o not_o for_o his_o sake_n but_o under_o his_o person_n he_o propound_v a_o common_a doctrine_n for_o see_v there_o be_v many_o which_o boast_v themselves_o to_o be_v faithful_a which_o be_v nothing_o less_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o true_a and_o good_a be_v discern_v from_o the_o false_a and_o counterfeit_v by_o some_o note_n or_o mark_v we_o know_v how_o great_o the_o jew_n boast_v in_o their_o father_n abraham_n when_o they_o boast_v of_o the_o holiness_n of_o their_o offspring_n notwithstanding_o scarce_o one_o of_o they_o among_o a_o hundred_o be_v find_v which_o be_v not_o a_o bastard_n and_o a_o stranger_n from_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o father_n therefore_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v take_v away_o the_o cloak_n from_o the_o hypocrite_n he_o brief_o define_v a_o true_a israelite_n and_o do_v therewith_o also_o take_v away_o the_o offence_n which_o afterward_o shall_v arise_v upon_o the_o wicked_a contumacy_n of_o that_o nation_n for_o they_o which_o will_v be_v count_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n and_o the_o holy_a people_n of_o god_n become_v afterward_o mortal_a and_o swear_v enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n lest_o therefore_o the_o common_a impiety_n almost_o of_o all_o estate_n shall_v discourage_v or_o trouble_v any_o man_n he_o admonish_v before_o hand_n and_o in_o dew_n time_n that_o among_o many_o which_o pretend_v the_o name_n of_o true_a israelite_n few_o be_v true_a in_o deed_n r._n but_o
say_v that_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o zeal_n but_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o speak_v those_o thing_n in_o his_o own_o personne_fw-fr which_o do_v proper_o belong_v to_o the_o messiah_n bu_n this_o therefore_o be_v apply_v unto_o christ_n the_o lord_n by_o a_o type_n which_o with_o his_o whole_a mind_n seek_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n c._n therefore_o the_o evangelist_n say_v that_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o note_n by_o which_o jesus_n be_v know_v of_o his_o disciple_n to_o be_v a_o repayrer_n of_o god_n kingdom_n m._n and_o here_o we_o have_v to_o note_v that_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v write_v they_o be_v write_v for_o our_o learning_n that_o through_o patience_n and_o consolation_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o may_v have_v hope_n c._n we_o must_v also_o note_v that_o no_o man_n shall_v know_v what_o christ_n be_v or_o to_o what_o end_n all_o that_o he_o do_v and_o suffer_v pertain_v but_o by_o the_o instruction_n of_o scripture_n wherefore_o as_o everye_o one_o of_o we_o shall_v desire_v to_o profit_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n so_o we_o must_v bestow_v continual_a diligence_n and_o meditation_n in_o the_o scripture_n but_o let_v we_o return_v to_o the_o deed_n of_o christ_n r._n christ_n himself_o say_v in_o another_o place_n learn_v of_o i_o 11._o math._n 11._o for_o i_o be_o meek_a and_o lowlye_o in_o heart_n in_o that_o therefore_o he_o seem_v in_o this_o place_n to_o be_v cruel_a contrary_n to_o his_o wont_a manner_n it_o be_v neither_o filthy_a desire_n envy_n nor_o rashness_n but_o divine_a zeal_n and_o just_a anger_n c._n it_o rest_v therefore_o now_o that_o everye_o man_n follow_v the_o example_n of_o christ_n see_v in_o the_o head_n a_o general_a example_n be_v propound_v in_o the_o whole_a body_n according_a to_o that_o which_o paul_n have_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n 15._o rom._n 15._o let_v we_o not_o suffer_v so_o much_o as_o in_o we_o lie_v the_o holy_a temple_n of_o god_n to_o be_v defile_v by_o any_o mean_n and_o this_o zeal_n ought_v chief_o to_o be_v in_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n m._n with_o how_o great_a ardent_a zeal_n be_v the_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n in_o time_n pass_v endue_v 13._o exod._n 32._o num._n 25._o 1._o king_n 17._o 3._o king_n 18._o act_n 7._o act_n 13._o as_o moses_n phinees_n david_n elias_n stephen_n paul_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n c._o notwithstanding_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n lest_o any_o man_n pass_v the_o bond_n of_o his_o call_n r._n for_o a_o true_a zeal_n pertain_v not_o to_o every_o spirit_n wherefore_o let_v no_o man_n usurp_v the_o same_o unto_o himself_o of_o his_o own_o authority_n lest_o in_o steed_n of_o zeal_n he_o have_v rashness_n and_o always_o take_v heed_n that_o thy_o zeal_n be_v according_a to_o knowledge_n 10._o rom._n 10._o for_o the_o jew_n persecute_v christ_n upon_o zeal_n but_o not_o according_a to_o knowledge_n 18._o then_o answer_v the_o jew_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o what_o token_n show_v thou_o unto_o we_o see_v that_o thou_o do_v these_o thing_n m._n it_o be_v very_o like_a that_o those_o jew_n which_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o lose_v their_o gain_n set_v upon_o christ_n with_o this_o question_n but_o they_o defend_v not_o their_o deed_n as_o though_o they_o be_v without_o just_a cause_n cast_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n for_o they_o can_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o they_o have_v make_v of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n a_o house_n of_o merchandise_n what_o then_o do_v they_o demand_v sure_o they_o demand_v by_o what_o authority_n with_o such_o severitye_n he_o cast_v out_o the_o byers_n and_o seller_n for_o by_o seek_v to_o blame_v christ_n they_o go_v about_o to_o excuse_v their_o own_o fault_n for_o he_o have_v say_v make_v not_o the_o house_n of_o my_o father_n a_o house_n of_o merchandise_n and_o therefore_o the_o evangelist_n say_v that_o the_o jew_n answer_v christ_n name_o to_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v concern_v his_o father_n house_n they_o seek_v no_o sign_n with_o their_o whole_a heart_n but_o seek_v only_o to_o condemn_v he_o of_o rashness_n and_o sedition_n because_o he_o be_v neither_o endue_v with_o divine_a nor_o humane_a authority_n take_v the_o government_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n to_o himself_o hereby_o therefore_o we_o see_v the_o disposition_n of_o those_o which_o sin_n in_o the_o temple_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n for_o gain_n sake_n who_o when_o they_o can_v neither_o deny_v their_o fault_n nor_o defend_v the_o same_o than_o they_o reproove_v those_o of_o who_o they_o be_v correct_v of_o rashness_n and_o sedition_n so_o far_o they_o be_v from_o amend_v that_o which_o they_o do_v amiss_o b._n therefore_o because_o moses_n confirm_v his_o embassage_n with_o sign_n these_o also_o require_v a_o sign_n that_o they_o may_v know_v that_o authority_n which_o the_o lord_n do_v arrogate_v unto_o himself_o to_o be_v commit_v unto_o he_o of_o god_n whereas_o those_o miserable_a wretch_n may_v even_o than_o have_v see_v a_o miracle_n have_v they_o not_o be_v amaze_v and_o blind_v c._n for_o in_o that_o no_o man_n in_o so_o great_a a_o company_n lay_v hand_n on_o christ_n as_o the_o byers_n and_o seller_n that_o be_v there_o it_o be_v a_o manifest_a sign_n that_o they_o be_v all_o strike_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v stand_v as_o man_n amaze_v wherefore_o except_o they_o have_v be_v stark_o blind_a this_o miracle_n be_v evident_a enough_o to_o be_v see_v that_o one_o shall_v be_v so_o bold_a to_o stand_v against_o so_o many_o that_o one_o which_o be_v a_o naked_a man_n shall_v not_o let_v to_o encounter_v with_o the_o valiant_a that_o one_o base_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n shall_v contend_v with_o prince_n for_o why_o do_v they_o not_o withstand_v he_o since_o they_o do_v far_o excel_v he_o in_o power_n but_o only_o because_o their_o force_n be_v restrain_v but_o the_o jew_n do_v err_v in_o this_o thing_n that_o they_o will_v not_o allow_v the_o vocation_n of_o christ_n except_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o a_o miracle_n for_o this_o be_v not_o see_v in_o the_o prophet_n and_o other_o minister_n of_o god_n that_o they_o shall_v always_o show_v miracle_n neither_o have_v god_n tie_v himself_o to_o this_o necessity_n but_o this_o be_v their_o corrupt_a custom_n and_o evil_a disposition_n 12._o math._n 12._o the_o which_o christ_n himself_o note_v say_v this_o adulterous_a and_o wicked_a generation_n require_v a_o sign_n etc._n etc._n not_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v know_v the_o truth_n but_o rather_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v thereby_o take_v some_o occasion_n to_o cavil_n such_o be_v they_o which_o at_o this_o day_n not_o be_v content_a at_o the_o first_o with_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o evangelicall_a doctrine_n desire_v to_o have_v sign_n give_v unto_o they_o 19_o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o they_o destroy_v this_o temple_n and_o in_o three_o day_n i_o will_v rear_v it_o up_o c._n this_o be_v a_o allegorical_a kind_n of_o speech_n and_o somewhat_o hard_a to_o be_v understande_v the_o which_o christ_n use_v because_o he_o judge_v they_o unworthy_a of_o a_o manifest_a answer_n m._n he_o can_v have_v show_v unto_o they_o by_o and_o by_o a_o argument_n of_o his_o divine_a authority_n if_o divine_a sign_n may_v have_v serve_v to_o ostentation_n which_o be_v ordain_v for_o the_o health_n of_o mankind_n but_o because_o they_o demand_v this_o question_n of_o a_o malicious_a mind_n and_o not_o to_o learn_v but_o to_o cavil_n he_o do_v not_o answer_v unto_o their_o question_n plain_o but_o obscurelye_o and_o he_o offer_v unto_o they_o a_o very_o great_a sign_n and_o the_o most_o certain_a of_o all_o other_o but_o know_v only_o to_o the_o faithful_a 1_o rom._n 1_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o resurrection_n by_o the_o which_o he_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o which_o sign_n as_o yet_o not_o come_v be_v not_o know_v to_o the_o unbeléeve_a jew_n c._n this_o be_v that_o therefore_o which_o he_o say_v in_o another_o place_n that_o he_o speak_v in_o parable_n unto_o they_o which_o can_v not_o comprehend_v the_o secréete_n mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 13_o math._n 13_o first_o of_o all_o therefore_o he_o deny_v to_o geve_v unto_o they_o a_o sign_n which_o they_o require_v either_o because_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v unprofitable_a or_o else_o because_o he_o know_v the_o due_a time_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v nevertheless_o he_o affirm_v that_o his_o power_n shall_v be_v ratify_v and_o confirm_v by_o no_o small_a sign_n lest_o they_o shall_v thereupon_o take_v some_o colloure_n of_o excuse_n r._n even_o as_o in_o another_o place_n he_o give_v unto_o they_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o prophet_n jonas_n
one_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n the_o wind_n blow_v b_z this_o be_v a_o explanation_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o go_v before_o but_o there_o be_v some_o which_o understande_v these_o thing_n not_o of_o the_o wind_n but_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o the_o hebrew_n word_n ruah_n signify_v either_o of_o they_o chr._n other_o some_o a_o great_a deal_n better_o understand_v the_o same_o which_o say_v that_o the_o similitude_n be_v take_v of_o the_o wind_n &_o do_v thus_o apply_v it_o to_o this_o present_a place_n the_o force_n of_o this_o wind_n be_v feel_v but_o the_o original_n and_o cause_n thereof_o be_v not_o know_v c._n but_o howsoever_o we_o wrest_v the_o scence_n of_o christ_n let_v we_o hold_v fast_o this_o that_o christ_n borrow_v this_o similitude_n of_o the_o order_n of_o nature_n nicodemus_n think_v that_o incredible_a which_o he_o have_v hear_v of_o regeneration_n and_o of_o a_o new_a life_n because_o his_o capacity_n can_v not_o reach_v unto_o the_o same_o christ_n to_o take_v from_o he_o this_o scruple_n or_o doubt_n teach_v that_o the_o wonderful_a power_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o corporal_a life_n the_o reason_n whereof_o be_v hide_v for_o all_o man_n draw_v the_o vital_a spirit_n out_o of_o the_o air_n even_o so_o the_o agitation_n or_o move_v of_o the_o air_n be_v feel_v notwithstanding_o from_o whence_o it_o come_v or_o whither_o it_o go_v we_o know_v not_o if_o in_o this_o frail_a and_o momentanye_a life_n god_n deal_v so_o mighty_o that_o we_o be_v constrain_v to_o wonder_v at_o his_o power_n what_o a_o absurd_a thing_n be_v it_o in_o the_o celestial_a and_o supernatural_a life_n to_o measure_v his_o secret_a work_n by_o the_o apprehension_n and_o capacity_n of_o our_o mind_n insomuch_o that_o we_o will_v believe_v no_o more_o than_o appear_v even_o so_o paul_n when_o he_o invey_v against_o those_o which_o therefore_o reject_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n because_o it_o seem_v impossible_a that_o the_o body_n which_o be_v now_o subject_a to_o putrefaction_n shall_v be_v bless_v with_o immortality_n when_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o nothing_o and_o consume_v to_o dust_n reprove_v their_o dulness_n because_o they_o consider_v not_o the_o like_a power_n of_o god_n in_o the_o seed_n wheat_n 104_o ●or_a 15_o psal_n 104_o for_o the_o seed_n do_v not_o grow_v until_o it_o have_v suffer_v putrefaction_n this_o be_v even_o the_o same_o wonderful_a wisdom_n of_o god_n of_o the_o which_o the_o prophet_n david_n cry_v out_o in_o his_o psalm_n therefore_o they_o be_v to_o gross_a and_o dull_a which_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o common_a order_n of_o nature_n have_v no_o far_o respect_n to_o know_v that_o the_o power_n of_o god_n in_o the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v far_o more_o mighty_a and_o wonder_a he_o say_v it_o blow_v whither_o it_o list_v not_o because_o the_o wind_n have_v proper_o a_o will_n but_o because_o the_o agitation_n and_o whirl_v thereof_o be_v free_a and_o diverse_a for_o the_o air_n be_v one_o while_o carry_v this_o way_n another_o while_n that_o way_n m._n and_o this_o be_v no_o unwoonted_a phrase_n of_o speech_n by_o which_o human_a scence_n seem_v to_o be_v give_v to_o thing_n without_o life_n so_o be_v every_o one_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n c._n hereby_o our_o saviour_n christ_n declare_v that_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o same_o may_v be_v as_o well_o discern_v in_o the_o renovation_n and_o regeneration_n of_o man_n as_o we_o may_v perceyve_v and_o feel_v the_o motion_n of_o the_o air_n and_o wind_n in_o this_o terrestrial_a and_o external_a life_n but_o yet_o that_o the_o manner_n how_o be_v hide_v from_o we_o and_o therefore_o that_o we_o be_v ingrateful_a and_o too_o to_o wicked_a if_o we_o do_v not_o adore_v and_o magnify_v the_o incomprehensible_a power_n of_o god_n in_o the_o heavenly_a life_n of_o the_o which_o he_o have_v in_o this_o world_n set_v before_o we_o so_o lively_a a_o view_n and_o also_o if_o we_o attribute_v less_o unto_o he_o in_o restore_v to_o we_o our_o soul_n health_n than_o in_o defend_v the_o state_n of_o our_o corporal_a life_n the_o application_n shall_v be_v more_o plain_a and_o manifest_a if_o we_o thus_o resolve_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n such_o be_v the_o power_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o a_o man_n regenerate_v par._n for_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n transform_v and_o change_v man_n mind_n by_o secret_a inspiration_n the_o power_n and_o effect_v thereof_o be_v feel_v wonder_a and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o action_n of_o the_o same_o be_v not_o discern_v with_o the_o eye_n and_o they_o which_o be_v thus_o regenerate_v be_v not_o now_o lead_v with_o the_o human_a or_o fleshly_a spirit_n but_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o quicken_v and_o order_v all_o thing_n bu_n insomuch_o that_o the_o apostle_n feel_v the_o force_n thereof_o say_v 2.20_o galat._n 2.20_o i_o live_v yet_o now_o not_o i_o but_o christ_n live_v in_o i_o and_o although_o the_o inward_a grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n have_v the_o pre-eminence_n in_o regeneration_n yet_o notwithstanding_o let_v no_o good_a man_n reject_v the_o preach_n of_o god_n word_n by_o which_o faith_n be_v plant_v for_o it_o be_v that_o immortal_a &_o incorruptible_a seed_n by_o which_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o to_o life_n nor_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o faithful_a by_o which_o the_o saint_n desire_v to_o have_v faith_n give_v and_o increase_v nor_o baptism_n by_o which_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v purge_v and_o wash_v from_o our_o sin_n 9_o nicodemus_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o he_o how_o can_v these_o thing_n be_v b._n the_o hour_n be_v not_o yet_o full_o come_v in_o the_o which_o nicodemus_n shall_v be_v full_o teach_v all_o thing_n concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n at_o the_o first_o when_o he_o think_v that_o christ_n speak_v of_o a_o carnal_a regeneration_n he_o object_v the_o impossibility_n of_o the_o same_o after_o that_o when_o he_o understand_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o another_o manner_n of_o nativity_n than_o of_o that_o which_o be_v carnal_a as_o of_o the_o nativity_n by_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n the_o which_o be_v declare_v unto_o he_o by_o a_o similitude_n he_o woonder_v &_o as_o one_o amaze_v demand_v how_o these_o thing_n can_v be_v c._o we_o see_v therefore_o what_o special_o let_v &_o hinder_v nicodemus_n whatsoever_o he_o hear_v he_o count_v wonder_a because_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o comprehend_v it_o even_o so_o there_o be_v no_o great_a hindrance_n unto_o we_o than_o our_o own_o arrogancy_n because_o in_o deed_n we_o always_o seek_v to_o be_v more_o wise_a than_o need_v and_o thereupon_o through_o a_o devilish_a disdain_n we_o reject_v all_o that_o our_o reason_n can_v comprehend_v as_o though_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o unspeakable_a and_o incomprehensible_a power_n of_o god_n aught_o to_o be_v restrain_v to_o so_o straight_o a_o measure_n we_o may_v after_o a_o sort_n inquire_v of_o the_o order_n and_o manner_n of_o god_n work_n so_o that_o it_o be_v do_v soberlye_o and_o reverentlye_o but_o nicodemus_n by_o this_o demand_n reject_v that_o which_o he_o béeléeve_v to_o be_v impossible_a as_o a_o fable_n m._n and_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o the_o evangelist_n so_o dilligentlye_o put_v down_o unto_o we_o the_o dulness_n and_o scencelesnesse_n of_o nicodemus_n in_o matter_n divine_a and_o appertain_v to_o salvation_n for_o we_o have_v in_o this_o man_n some_o proof_n of_o that_o which_o christ_n speak_v before_o set_v before_o we_o name_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o man_n to_o see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n except_o he_o be_v bear_v again_o bu_n for_o nicodemus_n be_v so_o notable_a a_o clerk_n be_v blind_a and_o ignorant_a after_o so_o great_a light_n because_o he_o be_v not_o bear_v again_o say_v how_o can_v these_o thing_n be_v whereby_o it_o appéer_v that_o he_o be_v so_o amaze_v at_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o be_v not_o only_o ignorant_a of_o the_o matter_n itself_o but_o also_o be_v not_o able_a to_o comprehend_v the_o declaration_n of_o the_o same_o as_o it_o be_v propound_v by_o christ_n in_o plain_a word_n even_o so_o at_o this_o day_n we_o see_v learn_v and_o wise_a man_n to_o be_v quite_o senseless_a and_o foolish_a when_o they_o come_v to_o comprehend_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n therefore_o if_o they_o which_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o truth_n do_v not_o by_o and_o by_o persuade_v everye_o one_o to_o who_o they_o preach_v when_o as_o christ_n with_o his_o word_n can_v not_o at_o the_o first_o persuade_v nicodemus_n but_o the_o fault_n be_v not_o in_o christ_n the_o teacher_n but_o
which_o he_o see_v to_o be_v wrought_v by_o christ_n for_o he_o see_v he_o to_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o heal_v all_o man_n that_o be_v sick_a but_o in_o that_o he_o pray_v he_o to_o go_v down_o to_o capernaum_n it_o belong_v to_o imbecility_n &_o a_o childish_a faith_n as_o though_o christ_n can_v not_o restore_v to_o health_n by_o his_o word_n only_o or_o by_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n such_o weakness_n of_o faith_n we_o may_v behold_v in_o another_o place_n in_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n for_o when_o the_o ship_n be_v overwhelm_v with_o wave_n they_o beléeve_v that_o christ_n be_v able_a to_o save_v they_o but_o not_o except_o he_o be_v awake_a for_o he_o slepte_v and_o they_o awake_v he_o 8._o math._n 8._o say_v lord_n save_v we_o we_o perish_v c._n this_o man_n therefore_o have_v conceyve_v no_o other_o thing_n than_o that_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n send_v of_o god_n with_o this_o commandment_n and_o commission_n that_o he_o shall_v prove_v and_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n by_o show_v miracle_n m._n he_o reque_v that_o christ_n will_v go_v down_o with_o he_o and_o heal_v his_o son_n 5.11_o 2._o king_n 5.11_o so_o naaman_n the_o syrian_a trust_v that_o elyzeus_n will_v have_v come_v down_o to_o he_o and_o have_v touch_v the_o place_n of_o the_o leprosy_n with_o his_o hand_n and_o stand_v will_v have_v call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o his_o god_n 22.46_o christ_n imagine_v of_o the_o people_n to_o be_v but_o a_o prophet_n math._n 16.14_o math._n 22.46_o and_o so_o have_v heal_v he_o and_o this_o faith_n which_o imagine_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o certain_a prophet_n in_o the_o beginning_n be_v in_o many_o man_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o answer_n which_o peter_n make_v unto_o christ_n this_o also_o be_v the_o first_o opinion_n that_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n have_v conceyve_v of_o christ_n the_o which_o notwithstanding_o the_o lord_n contemn_v not_o but_o so_o increase_v the_o same_o that_o not_o only_o she_o but_o also_o many_o of_o her_o citizens_n know_v he_o to_o be_v christ_n the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n even_o so_o here_o he_o which_o do_v not_o quench_v the_o smoke_a flax_n 12.20_o esai_n 42.3_o mat._n 12.20_o enlarge_v and_o help_v the_o ruler_n faith_n 48._o then_o say_v jesus_n unto_o he_o except_o you_o see_v sign_n and_o wonder_n you_o will_v not_o believe_v m._n in_o that_o the_o lord_n here_o use_v the_o plural_a number_n say_v except_o you_o see_v sign_n and_o wonder_n you_o will_v not_o believe_v c._n he_o seem_v general_o to_o reprehend_v all_o the_o jew_n because_o they_o be_v to_o desirous_a of_o miracle_n m._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v how_o long_o be_v you_o so_o hard_o heart_a to_o believe_v the_o truth_n and_o by_o a_o true_a faith_n to_o embrace_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n which_o be_v preach_v unto_o you_o that_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v at_o all_o except_o you_o be_v constrain_v thereunto_o by_o sign_n and_o wonder_n their_o faith_n and_o trust_n be_v acceptaple_n unto_o i_o which_o believe_v my_o bare_a word_n confirm_v by_o no_o miracle_n you_o believe_v not_o i_o except_o you_o see_v sign_n and_o wonder_n m._n all_o they_o have_v this_o disease_n of_o distrust_n which_o follow_v the_o judgement_n and_o wisdom_n of_o humane_a reason_n rather_o than_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n for_o such_o be_v humane_a reason_n that_o except_o it_o be_v convince_v by_o evident_a sign_n and_o persuade_v by_o undoubted_a argument_n it_o will_v not_o believe_v and_o this_o be_v the_o very_a same_o which_o paul_n say_v the_o thing_n that_o belong_v unto_o god_n 2.14_o i_o cor._n 2.14_o seem_v foolish_a to_o worldly_a wisdom_n and_o be_v not_o understand_v whereupon_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v we_o to_o become_v fool_n that_o be_v to_o say_v beléever_n to_o understande_v they_o for_o except_o they_o be_v beléeve_v they_o shall_v not_o be_v understand_v but_o with_o this_o disease_n be_v both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n infect_v concern_v the_o jew_n this_o place_n speak_v and_o also_o the_o thyrtye_n and_o nine_o verse_n of_o the_o twelve_o of_o matthew_n concern_v both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n the_o apostle_n say_v the_o jew_n require_v sign_n and_o the_o greek_n wisdom_n 1.21_o i_o cor._n 1.21_o that_o be_v to_o say_v both_o be_v distrustful_a and_o believe_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n where_o faith_n be_v require_v requyre_v certain_a persuasion_n of_o sign_n and_o argument_n c._n but_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o christ_n be_v so_o sharp_a now_o who_o be_v wont_a gentlye_o to_o receyve_v other_o which_o desire_a miracle_n as_o we_o may_v read_v here_o and_o there_o of_o diverse_a blind_a and_o lame_a personne_n he_o have_v then_o verylye_a some_o certain_a reason_n which_o be_v hide_v from_o we_o why_o he_o deal_v more_o severelye_o with_o this_o man_n than_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o do_v with_o other_o and_o peradventure_o he_o have_v not_o so_o much_o respect_n unto_o this_o man_n as_o he_o have_v to_o the_o whole_a nation_n he_o see_v that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v little_o esteem_v and_o not_o only_o neglect_v but_o utterlye_o despise_v all_o man_n depend_v upon_o miracle_n and_o be_v rather_o amaze_v than_o wonder_v at_o they_o vice_n incredulity_n a_o detestable_a vice_n therefore_o that_o wicked_a contempt_n of_o god_n word_n which_o common_o reign_v in_o they_o cause_v he_o to_o make_v this_o complaint_n m._n for_o most_o detestable_a be_v this_o vice_n incredulity_n by_o which_o man_n refuse_v to_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n except_o they_o be_v dryven_v thereunto_o by_o sign_n very_o true_a it_o be_v that_o some_o of_o the_o father_n in_o old_a time_n have_v wish_v a_o confyrmation_n by_o sign_n lest_o they_o shall_v doubt_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o promise_n we_o see_v also_o that_o god_n be_v not_o offend_v with_o their_o desire_n as_o we_o may_v read_v of_o gedeon_n 38.22_o judg._n 6.7_o esa_n 38.22_o of_o ezechias_n and_o of_o other_o c._n but_o christ_n note_v here_o a_o far_o great_a wickedness_n for_o so_o the_o jew_n depend_v upon_o miracle_n that_o they_o have_v no_o regard_n unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o that_o all_o their_o religion_n all_o their_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o all_o their_o godliness_n be_v in_o miracle_n r._n but_o that_o be_v no_o true_a faith_n which_o be_v conceyve_v either_o of_o miracle_n of_o sign_n or_o wonder_n for_o miracle_n be_v only_a seal_n and_o witness_n therefore_o they_o do_v not_o make_v he_o which_o be_v unbeléeving_a a_o true_a beléever_n but_o they_o do_v confirm_v he_o which_o be_v first_o a_o beléever_n in_o his_o faith_n c._n they_o therefore_o at_o this_o day_n great_o offend_v which_o cry_n say_v let_v we_o first_o see_v miracle_n and_o then_o we_o will_v geve_v ear_n to_o this_o doctrine_n as_o though_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n ought_v to_o be_v so_o base_a in_o our_o eye_n unless_o it_o have_v some_o other_o stay_n but_o although_o god_n shall_v heap_v upon_o they_o a_o innumerable_a sort_n of_o miracle_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o lie_v when_o they_o say_v they_o will_v believe_v 12.37_o exod._n 5._o joh._n 12.37_o there_o will_v arise_v a_o certain_a external_a admiration_n but_o there_o will_v follow_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o more_o attention_n to_o doctrine_n the_o which_o we_o may_v plain_o behold_v in_o pharaoh_n and_o in_o the_o jew_n for_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n abide_v for_o ever_o if_o they_o will_v not_o hear_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n 16.31_o luk._n 16.31_o neither_o will_v they_o believe_v though_o one_o shall_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a it_o be_v no_o marvel_n therefore_o if_o the_o lord_n do_v first_o of_o all_o seek_v to_o cure_v the_o disease_a father_n with_o distrust_n before_o he_o restore_v his_o son_n to_o health_n for_o they_o be_v more_o dangerous_a sick_a which_o be_v sick_a in_o mind_n and_o ought_v rather_o to_o be_v heal_v than_o they_o which_o be_v sick_a in_o body_n a._n christ_n therefore_o do_v the_o office_n in_o deed_n of_o a_o bishop_n of_o a_o pastor_n and_o of_o the_o shepherd_n of_o our_o soul_n 49._o the_o ruler_n say_v unto_o he_o sir_n come_v down_o or_o ever_o that_o my_o son_n dye_v because_o this_o ruler_n be_v whole_o occupy_v in_o mind_n to_o delyver_v his_o son_n from_o perryll_n of_o death_n he_o answer_v nothing_o but_o rather_o urge_v the_o lord_n to_o make_v haste_n before_o his_o son_n geve_v up_o his_o soul_n affection_n fatherlye_n care_n and_o affection_n m._n we_o see_v therefore_o in_o he_o first_o a_o image_n of_o the_o affection_n of_o father_n toward_o their_o child_n by_o which_o everye_o father_n natural_o desire_v the_o save_a health_n of_o his_o child_n the_o
lord_n declare_v that_o it_o be_v no_o strange_a thing_n to_o he_o that_o the_o capernaite_v see_v do_v not_o see_v and_o believe_v in_o he_o he_o come_v for_o no_o other_o cause_n into_o this_o world_n than_o for_o their_o sake_n who_o the_o father_n have_v ordain_v to_o everlasting_a life_n and_o have_v deliver_v to_o he_o to_o be_v save_v and_o he_o be_v most_o sertain_o sure_a of_o this_o that_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o he_o and_o that_o he_o will_v reject_v none_o of_o they_o but_o will_v willing_o embrace_v everye_o on_o of_o they_o but_o as_o for_o other_o he_o will_v not_o regard_v they_o and_o thus_o he_o show_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o capernaite_n do_v not_o believe_v in_o he_o namely_o because_o they_o be_v not_o give_v to_o he_o of_o the_o father_n c._n therefore_o lest_o their_o unbeléefe_n shall_v derogate_v any_o thing_n from_o his_o doctrine_n he_o say_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o so_o great_a obstinacy_n be_v for_o that_o they_o be_v reprobate_n and_o none_o of_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n for_o this_o purpose_n therefore_o he_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o elect_a and_o the_o reprobate_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o doctrine_n may_v stand_v nevertheless_o although_o many_o beleve_v not_o the_o same_o for_o the_o wicked_a do_v detract_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o do_v esteem_v the_o same_o as_o nothing_o because_o they_o be_v not_o touch_v with_o the_o reverence_n thereof_o and_o a_o great_a many_o weak_a and_o ignorant_a man_n do_v doubt_n whether_o that_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o no_o which_o be_v reject_v of_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o world_n for_o this_o stumble_a block_n christ_n provide_v when_o he_o deny_v those_o to_o be_v his_o which_o believe_v not_o if_o to_o such_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v unsavoury_a it_o be_v no_o marvel_n but_o all_o the_o child_n of_o god_n embrace_v the_o same_o first_o of_o all_o we_o gather_v out_o of_o this_o place_n that_o the_o benefit_n of_o faith_n come_v of_o the_o free_a gift_n of_o god_n the_o father_n not_o of_o human_a strengthe_n whomesoever_o the_o father_n have_v give_v to_o the_o son_n come_v to_o the_o son_n c._n therefore_o faith_n be_v not_o in_o the_o will_n of_o man_n that_o this_o or_o that_o man_n may_v believe_v without_o exception_n god_n faith_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v by_o chance_n but_o god_n choose_v they_o who_o he_o delyver_v to_o the_o son_n as_o it_o be_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n for_o when_o he_o say_v all_o that_o be_v give_v we_o may_v gather_v that_o all_o be_v not_o give_v moreover_o we_o gather_v that_o god_n do_v work_v in_o his_o elect_a with_o so_o great_a efficacy_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o none_o of_o they_o do_v fall_v away_o from_o he_o for_o this_o word_n of_o geve_v be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o christ_n have_v say_v those_o who_o the_o father_n have_v choose_v he_o do_v regenerate_v and_o addict_v they_o to_o i_o in_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o gospel_n bu_n they_o therefore_o which_o believe_v believe_v through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n but_o they_o which_o believe_v not_o have_v to_o accuse_v their_o own_o wickedness_n and_o not_o to_o find_v fault_n with_o god_n grace_n salvation_n come_v through_o grace_n those_o who_o the_o father_n will_v have_v save_v he_o geve_v to_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n receive_v they_o and_o the_o father_n geve_v when_o he_o drive_v &_o frame_v the_o will_n and_o affection_n of_o man_n and_o geve_v they_o power_n and_o strength_n to_o believe_v the_o word_n and_o miracle_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n the_o son_n receive_v when_o he_o friendly_a entertayn_v all_o those_o that_o come_v to_o he_o and_o join_v they_o to_o himself_o and_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o say_v 8.30_o rom._n 8.30_o those_o who_o he_o have_v predestinate_a he_o have_v call_v and_o who_o he_o have_v call_v he_o have_v justify_v and_o who_o he_o have_v justify_v he_o have_v also_o glorify_v m._n furthermore_o we_o must_v note_n that_o christ_n speak_v hear_v not_o according_a to_o that_o dyvine_a majesty_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o eternal_a word_n to_o the_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v give_v that_o it_o have_v not_o but_o accord_v to_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o mediation_n reconciliation_n and_o human_a redemtion_n which_o he_o have_v take_v in_o hand_n for_o the_o father_n have_v give_v to_o his_o son_n as_o to_o a_o mediator_n reconcilor_n &_o redeemer_n out_o of_o that_o sinful_a multitude_n of_o mortal_a man_n those_o to_o be_v savid_n who_o he_o have_v choose_v to_o life_n from_o everlasting_a a_o we_o have_v already_o show_v what_o it_o be_v to_o come_v unto_o christ_n m._n for_o we_o must_v not_o understand_v that_o which_o he_o here_o speak_v of_o every_o one_o which_o come_v unto_o he_o for_o the_o unbeléeve_a capernaite_n come_v unto_o he_o who_o notwitstandinge_v the_o father_n have_v not_o give_v to_o he_o otherwise_o they_o have_v beleve_v in_o he_o but_o he_o speak_v of_o those_o which_o come_v to_o he_o as_o to_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n and_o to_o the_o know_a savioure_n reveal_v by_o the_o father_n concern_v those_o i_o say_v he_o say_v and_o he_o that_o come_v to_o i_o i_o cast_v not_o away_o c._n the_o which_o also_o partayn_v to_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o godly_a that_o they_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o they_o have_v free_a access_n unto_o christ_n and_o shall_v be_v gentle_o receyve_v so_o soon_o as_o they_o commit_v themselves_o to_o his_o faith_n and_o charge_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v healtful_a to_o those_o that_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n because_o no_o man_n offer_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o disciple_n unto_o christ_n but_o he_o which_o feel_v he_o and_o have_v experience_n that_o he_o be_v a_o faithful_a teacher_n a._n this_o place_n therefore_o agree_v with_o that_o which_o we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o 18.47_o joh._n 18.47_o he_o which_o be_v of_o god_n hear_v god_n word_n therefore_o you_o do_v not_o hear_v because_o you_o be_v not_o of_o god_n again_o 10.26_o joh._n 10.26_o my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o follow_v i_o therefore_o you_o do_v not_o believe_v 13.48_o act_n 13.48_o because_o you_o be_v none_o of_o my_o sheep_n m._n for_o we_o read_v that_o they_o believe_v the_o word_n so_o many_o as_o be_v ordain_v to_o everlasting_a life_n b._n they_o therefore_o which_o be_v abject_n to_o the_o world_n and_o be_v despise_v as_o dust_n may_v be_v of_o good_a courage_n for_o christ_n will_v love_o receive_v they_o if_o so_o be_v they_o come_v to_o he_o in_o faith_n for_o he_o cast_v none_o away_o that_o come_v to_o he_o in_o faith_n he_o preserve_v he_o to_o the_o end_n 10.18_o joh._n 10.18_o &_o they_o shall_v never_o perish_v m._n for_o they_o be_v citizen_n with_o the_o saint_n and_o of_o the_o household_n of_o god_n wherefore_o they_o can_v never_o be_v exclude_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o see_v it_o be_v know_v to_o god_n alone_o who_o they_o be_v that_o be_v give_v to_o christ_n to_o be_v savid_n and_o who_o not_o 2_o ephe._n 2_o for_o the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v his_o yet_o notwitstand_v no_o man_n can_v be_v ignorant_a whether_o he_o come_v unto_o christ_n by_o fay_v and_o with_o a_o desire_n of_o heavenly_a grace_n 2.19_o 2._o tim._n 2.19_o or_o not_o for_o what_o can_v be_v more_o evident_a and_o manifest_a to_o our_o heart_n than_o that_o which_o our_o heart_n most_o of_o all_o desier_v 13.5_o 2._o cor._n 13.5_o whereupon_o the_o apostle_n say_v try_v and_o prove_v yourselves_o whether_o you_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n or_o no._n do_v you_o not_o know_v yourselves_o whether_o christ_n jesus_n be_v in_o you_o so_o that_o we_o be_v make_v sure_a by_o that_o which_o be_v manifest_a concern_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v hide_v from_o we_o as_o whether_o the_o father_n have_v give_v we_o to_o the_o son_n and_o whether_o the_o son_n will_v cast_v we_o away_o or_o no._n if_o we_o come_v to_o chest_n no_o doubt_n we_o be_v give_v to_o he_o of_o the_o father_n and_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v cast_v away_o b._n but_o see_v none_o can_v be_v persuade_v of_o these_o thing_n but_o the_o elect_v that_o be_v to_o say_v such_o as_o be_v endue_v with_o god_n spirit_n and_o be_v regenerate_v who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v bring_v to_o security_n and_o sloth_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o these_o thing_n that_o nothing_o can_v so_o much_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o to_o every_o good_a work_n it_o be_v plain_a enough_o that_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o say_v which_o affirm_v that_o these_o thing_n ought_v not_o to_o
unknown_a to_o other_o be_v manifest_a to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o which_o the_o evangelist_n note_v not_o so_o much_o because_o of_o christ_n as_o for_o our_o sake_n that_o we_o may_v learn_v not_o to_o judge_v but_o in_o such_o matter_n as_o be_v well_o know_v to_o we_o for_o this_o which_o christ_n be_v here_o say_v to_o know_v from_o the_o beginning_n be_v proper_a to_o his_o divinitye_n moreover_o he_o noat_v it_o for_o our_o sake_n forbydde_v rash_a judgement_n forbydde_v that_o we_o which_o have_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o man_n heart_n may_v learn_v to_o suspend_v our_o judgement_n untyll_o such_o time_n as_o impiety_n shall_v bewray_v itself_o by_o external_a sign_n and_o so_o the_o tree_n may_v be_v know_v by_o his_o fruit_n r._n by_o this_o verse_n also_o he_o do_v fortifye_v the_o imbecility_n of_o the_o apostle_n against_o the_o offence_n which_o be_v to_o come_v by_o the_o treason_n of_o judas_n for_o it_o be_v a_o great_a offence_n and_o stumble_a block_n to_o the_o weak_a when_o they_o which_o seem_v to_o be_v god_n elect_v and_o choose_v do_v betray_v christ_n wherefore_o do_v he_o prophesy_v long_o before_o that_o judas_n shall_v fall_v away_o that_o they_o may_v confirm_v their_o faith_n and_o that_o they_o may_v not_o suspect_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o fall_n of_o some_o m._n therefore_o the_o evangelist_n mean_v in_o this_o matter_n to_o win_v great_a estimation_n unto_o christ_n lest_o he_o may_v be_v think_v to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o wickedness_n of_o he_o which_o shall_v betray_v he_o r._n this_o place_n also_o teach_v the_o fear_n of_o god._n for_o if_o the_o lord_n spare_v not_o the_o natural_a branch_n take_v heed_n that_o it_o come_v not_o to_o pass_v that_o he_o do_v not_o spare_v thou_o also_o m._n last_o of_o all_o 11.21_o rom._n 11.21_o it_o be_v here_o to_o be_v noated_a that_o there_o be_v certain_a degree_n of_o unbeléefe_n and_o that_o one_o man_n in_o who_o there_o want_v faith_n may_v be_v more_o wicked_a than_o another_o he_o know_v say_v the_o evangelist_n who_o be_v not_o believe_v and_o who_o it_o be_v that_o shall_v betray_v he_o he_o make_v special_a mention_v of_o the_o traitor_n as_o of_o a_o man_n of_o most_o monstrous_a wickedness_n he_o also_o be_v unbeléeving_a but_o his_o unbeléefe_n be_v not_o without_o notable_a malice_n euenso_fw-la at_o this_o day_n there_o be_v many_o unbeléever_n in_o the_o church_n but_o so_o that_o one_o of_o they_o do_v far_o excel_v another_o in_o example_n of_o unbeléefe_n some_o of_o these_o unbeléever_n be_v superstitious_a some_o epicure_n othersome_a be_v notable_a traitor_n insomuche_o that_o for_o gain_n sake_n they_o be_v ready_a under_o the_o coolour_n of_o familiarity_n to_o betray_v the_o lord_n truth_n the_o church_n itself_o and_o all_o godliness_n 65._o and_o he_o say_v therefore_o say_v i_o unto_o you_o that_o no_o man_n can_v come_v to_o i_o except_o it_o be_v give_v to_o he_o of_o my_o father_n bu_n again_o he_o repeat_v the_o cause_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o unbeléefe_n they_z which_o be_v draw_v of_o the_o father_n believe_v but_o they_o which_o be_v not_o draw_v of_o the_o father_n believe_v not_o m._n this_o he_o say_v before_o to_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o here_o he_o teach_v that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v general_a and_o appertain_v to_o all_o those_o which_o be_v void_a of_o faith_n and_o come_v not_o to_o the_o saviour_n these_o disciple_n come_v unto_o christ_n corporallye_o and_o corporal_o follow_v he_o and_o for_o this_o corporal_a cleave_v unto_o he_o be_v count_v for_o his_o disciple_n and_o they_o again_o for_o their_o part_n will_v seem_v to_o be_v his_o disciple_n but_o how_o they_o do_v follow_v he_o and_o cleave_v unto_o he_o in_o spirit_n which_o belong_v to_o all_o true_a disciple_n it_o be_v already_o declare_v c._n he_o show_v therefore_o that_o faith_n be_v a_o very_a rare_a and_o singular_a gift_n of_o the_o spyrite_n of_o god_n lest_o we_o shall_v marvel_n that_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o general_o receyve_v of_o all_o man_n for_o the_o most_o part_n for_o we_o have_v the_o less_o estimation_n of_o the_o gospel_n because_o all_o the_o world_n obey_v not_o the_o same_o for_o it_o come_v into_o our_o mind_n how_o it_o can_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v wyllinglye_o reject_v their_o own_o salvation_n christ_n therefore_o show_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o number_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v so_o few_o name_o because_o no_o man_n of_o himself_o come_v to_o the_o father_n for_o all_o man_n be_v blind_a untyll_o they_o be_v illuminate_v by_o god_n holy_a spyrite_n they_o therefore_o be_v partaker_n of_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n upon_o who_o the_o father_n bestow_v the_o participation_n of_o his_o spyrite_n for_o if_o all_o man_n have_v this_o grace_n the_o make_v mention_v of_o the_o same_o in_o this_o place_n shall_v be_v out_o of_o time_n and_o far_o from_o the_o purpose_n for_o we_o must_v note_n the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v to_o show_v how_o that_o many_o believe_v not_o the_o gospel_n because_o faith_n grow_v not_o but_o by_o the_o séecréete_n revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n a._n but_o this_o verse_n be_v more_o at_o large_a expound_v before_o c._n but_o he_o use_v here_o this_o word_n give_v for_o draw_v to_o declare_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o move_v god_n to_o draw_v we_o unto_o he_o but_o his_o free_a grace_n and_o mercy_n for_o that_o which_o we_o have_v by_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n come_v not_o by_o our_o own_o industrye_n 66._o from_o that_o time_n many_o of_o his_o disciple_n go_v back_o and_o walk_v no_o more_o with_o he_o bu_n now_o be_v join_v to_o the_o former_a disputation_n notable_a example_n of_o such_o as_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o such_o as_o eat_v it_o not_o for_o those_o which_o be_v starter_n away_o from_o christ_n do_v neither_o eat_v nor_o drink_n christ_n because_o they_o want_v faith_n but_o the_o eleven_o disciple_n do_v truelye_o eat_v and_o drink_v for_o they_o do_v believe_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n who_o they_o do_v confess_v with_o a_o strong_a and_o lively_a faith_n m._n therefore_o we_o see_v no_o strange_a or_o unwonted_a thing_n come_v to_o pass_v when_o many_o do_v fall_v away_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n see_v that_o here_o it_o be_v say_v that_o many_o disciple_n forsake_v christ_n himself_o 13.20_o mat._n 13.20_o a_o lyvelye_a description_n of_o this_o matter_n be_v set_v before_o we_o in_o the_o parrable_n of_o the_o seed_n which_o fall_v upon_o stony_a ground_n r._n man_n nature_n follow_v christ_n so_o long_o as_o he_o have_v any_o hope_n to_o be_v reward_v but_o his_o hope_n be_v once_o frustrate_a he_o go_v away_o and_o forsake_v christ_n c._n but_o this_o be_v a_o horrible_a monster_n that_o so_o gentle_a &_o love_a invitation_n can_v withdraw_v the_o mind_n of_o so_o many_o special_o of_o such_o as_o have_v before_o give_v their_o name_n unto_o he_o and_o be_v his_o familiar_a disciple_n but_o this_o example_n be_v set_v before_o we_o as_o it_o be_v in_o steed_n of_o a_o glass_n in_o the_o which_o we_o may_v behold_v how_o great_a the_o wickedness_n and_o ingratitude_n of_o the_o world_n be_v which_o take_v occasion_n to_o stumble_v even_o in_o the_o very_a fair_a and_o plain_a way_n that_o it_o may_v not_o come_v unto_o christ_n that_o therefore_o which_o be_v foreshow_v concern_v christ_n 8.14_o esai_n 8.14_o ought_v then_o to_o have_v be_v consider_v in_o his_o doctrine_n and_o now_o also_o he_o must_v be_v daily_o a_o stone_n of_o offence_n for_o here_o can_v never_o be_v such_o diligent_a take_a heed_n but_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n must_v needs_o be_v to_o many_o a_o occasion_n of_o offence_n because_o the_o reprobat_n be_v ordain_v to_o destruction_n do_v suck_v poison_n out_o of_o most_o wholesome_a meat_n and_o gall_v out_o of_o hony_n the_o son_n of_o god_n truelye_o observe_v that_o which_o be_v profitable_a and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o see_v that_o he_o offend_v many_o of_o his_o disciple_n therefore_o how_o much_o so_o ever_o many_o do_v abhor_v the_o pure_a doctrine_n yet_o nevertheless_o they_o may_v not_o suppress_v the_o same_o only_o let_v the_o teacher_n of_o the_o church_n remember_v the_o admonition_fw-la of_o saint_n paul_n 2.15_o 2._o tim._n 2.15_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v right_o a_o offence_n and_o they_o shall_v over_o stride_v all_o stumble_a block_n void_a of_o fear_n m._n moreover_o saint_n john_n say_v in_o his_o epistle_n they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v none_o of_o we_o i9_n ●_o joh._n 2_o i9_n for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v
hold_n of_o his_o hand_n when_o he_o reach_v the_o same_o unto_o we_o he_o will_v lead_v we_o unto_o his_o father_n and_o so_o long_o as_o we_o shall_v be_v pilgrim_n in_o this_o world_n he_o will_v not_o only_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v never_o unto_o we_o but_o will_v also_o for_o ever_o dwell_v within_o us._n but_o if_o we_o neglect_v his_o presence_n he_o lose_v nothing_o thereby_o but_o we_o lose_v his_o presence_n whereby_o we_o shall_v be_v leave_v without_o god_n and_o life_n 34._o you_o shall_v seek_v i_o and_o shall_v not_o find_v i_o and_o where_o i_o be_o thither_o can_v you_o not_o come_v c._n this_o be_v a_o gréevous_a threaten_n against_o the_o mocker_n and_o contemner_n of_o his_o truth_n they_o seek_v to_o kill_v christ_n but_o christ_n here_o in_o a_o ambiguous_a and_o dark_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n deride_v they_o because_o shortelye_o it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o shall_v seek_v he_o after_o another_o manner_n name_o to_o find_v some_o help_n and_o comfort_n in_o their_o misery_n and_o destruction_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o can_v suffer_v and_o abide_v my_o presence_n for_o a_o little_a time_n but_o it_o will_v shortelye_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o you_o shall_v seek_v i_o in_o vain_a because_o i_o be_v far_o from_o you_o not_o only_o in_o body_n but_o also_o in_o power_n will_v look_v for_o your_o destruction_n from_o heaven_n r._n for_o there_o be_v great_a calamity_n hang_v over_o your_o head_n you_o shall_v perish_v boath_n in_o body_n and_o in_o soul_n then_o in_o desire_n of_o the_o messiah_n you_o shall_v lift_v up_o your_o hand_n unto_o heaven_n than_o you_o shall_v cry_v unto_o god_n and_o he_o shall_v not_o hear_v you_o c._n for_o here_o the_o sorrowful_a sig●_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v noated_a when_o as_o they_o be_v constrain_v by_o necessity_n flee_v unto_o god_n but_o then_o also_o seek_v they_o do_v not_o seek_v for_o their_o unbeléefe_n and_o hardness_n of_o heart_n do_v drive_v they_o from_o god_n they_o will_v desire_v god_n to_o be_v their_o deliverer_n but_o by_o their_o impenitency_n and_o hardness_n of_o heart_n they_o keep_v back_o their_o deliveraunce_n example_n hereof_o we_o have_v in_o esau_n ●_o gen._n 27._o ●_o who_o for_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o birthright_n be_v not_o only_o sorrowful_a but_o also_o outrageous_a angerye_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o the_o right_a way_n of_o seek_v benediction_n that_o the_o same_o offend_v he_o and_o vex_v he_o much_o more_o thus_o god_n be_v wont_v to_o take_v vengeance_n one_o the_o reprobate_a for_o their_o contempt_n of_o his_o grace_n that_o either_o they_o be_v afflict_v with_o sharp_a punishment_n or_o hold_v with_o the_o feel_v of_o their_o misery_n or_o be_v drive_v into_o some_o straits_n complain_v cry_n and_o howl_v but_o without_o profit_n because_o they_o be_v always_o like_a unto_o themselves_o retain_v their_o former_a wickedness_n and_o therefore_o do_v not_o truelye_o seek_v god_n therefore_o the_o wicked_a shall_v at_o the_o length_n know_v christ_n christ_n vengeance_n for_o the_o contempt_n of_o christ_n and_o wish_v for_o salvation_n of_o he_o but_o in_o vain_a even_o then_o when_o deserve_a vengeance_n light_v upon_o he_o this_o vengeance_n the_o jew_n feel_v often_o but_o especial_o when_o they_o be_v destroy_v by_o titus_n then_o they_o will_v have_v see_v but_o one_o day_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o will_v willing_o have_v embrace_v his_o word_n but_o all_o to_o late_o c._n hereby_o we_o learn_v that_o christ_n must_v be_v receyve_v in_o time_n when_o he_o stand_v before_o we_o as_o present_v lest_o we_o lose_v the_o occasion_n to_o enjoy_v he_o because_o the_o gate_n be_v once_o shut_v 25.10_o mat._n 25.10_o we_o shall_v seek_v to_o enter_v in_o vain_a and_o the_o prophet_n say_v seek_v the_o lord_n while_o he_o may_v be_v find_v 55.6_o esay_n 55.6_o call_v upon_o he_o while_o he_o be_v nigh_o therefore_o we_o must_v run_v to_o god_n with_o speed_n while_o it_o be_v his_o good_a pleasure_n 49.8_o esay_n 49.8_o as_o say_v the_o same_o prophet_n because_o we_o know_v not_o how_o long_o the_o lord_n will_v suffer_v our_o sluggishness_n 35._o then_o say_v the_o jew_n among_o themselves_o whither_o will_v he_o go_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o find_v he_o will_v he_o go_v unto_o the_o disperse_a among_o the_o grecian_n and_o teach_v the_o gentiles_n bu_n the_o gross_a jew_n not_o understand_v those_o greevouse_n threaten_n of_o the_o lord_n construe_v his_o word_n i_o can_v tell_v how_o c._n for_o this_o the_o euaungeliste_n add_v to_o show_v how_o great_a the_o dulness_n of_o the_o people_n be_v euenso_fw-la the_o wicked_a be_v not_o only_o deaf_a to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o also_o make_v a_o jest_n and_o scorn_n of_o horrible_a thretninge_n even_o as_o if_o they_o hear_v a_o tale_n or_o some_o vain_a thing_n christ_n have_v very_o express_o speak_v of_o the_o father_n by_o name_n but_o they_o stay_v themselves_o and_o have_v only_a respect_n to_o the_o earth_n neither_o do_v they_o think_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o any_o thing_n else_o than_o of_o his_o go_v into_o a_o strange_a country_n will_v he_o go_v unto_o the_o disperse_a among_o the_o greek_n r._n by_o the_o disperse_a here_o among_o the_o grecian_n may_v be_v mean_v the_o israelite_n c._n that_o we_o may_v understande_v that_o christ_n come_v not_o to_o the_o uncircumcised_a but_o to_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v disperse_v through_o diverse_a part_n of_o the_o world_n for_o this_o word_n disperse_v will_v not_o apt_o agree_v and_o appertain_v to_o those_o that_o be_v bear_v and_o do_v inhabit_v their_o native_a country_n but_o it_o do_v very_o well_o appertain_v to_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v ronagate_n and_o banish_a man_n so_o peter_n write_v his_o first_o epistle_n to_o those_o that_o be_v desperse_v throughout_o pontus_n galacia_n cappadocia_n asia_n and_o bithynia_n and_o james_n salute_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n which_o be_v disperse_v the_o which_o manner_n of_o speech_n be_v take_v out_o of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n therefore_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o these_o word_n be_v this_o r._n will_v he_o go_v to_o those_o other_o jew_n which_o dwell_v not_o in_o this_o region_n but_o in_o gréece_n will_v he_o go_v over_o the_o sea_n to_o the_o jew_n which_o dwell_v we_o wot_v not_o where_o it_o may_v be_v that_o they_o go_v about_o to_o vex_v our_o saviour_n christ_n with_o this_o mock_n if_o this_o be_v messias_o will_v he_o establish_v the_o seat_n of_o his_o kingdom_n in_o gréece_n when_o as_o the_o lord_n have_v assign_v the_o land_n of_o canaan_n for_o the_o same_o but_o howesoever_o they_o mean_v we_o see_v that_o they_o be_v nothing_o move_v with_o the_o severe_a threaten_n of_o christ_n moreover_o concern_v these_o disperse_a jew_n the_o evangelist_n have_v speak_v in_o he_o twelu_v chapter_n the_o twenty_o verse_n the_o exposition_n of_o the_o thirty_o six_o verse_n follow_v be_v include_v in_o this_o thirty_o five_o verse_n 37._o in_o the_o last_o day_n that_o great_a day_n of_o the_o feast_n jesus_n stand_v and_o cry_v say_v if_o any_o man_n thirst_n let_v he_o come_v unto_o i_o and_o drink_v b._n this_o last_o day_n be_v the_o eight_o day_n of_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a day_n on_o the_o which_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o the_o great_a number_n of_o people_n do_v assemble_v themselves_o together_o and_o come_v into_o the_o temple_n where_o jesus_n teach_v c._n let_v we_o note_n that_o christ_n be_v not_o so_o terrefy_v by_o any_o of_o the_o conspiracy_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o he_o forsake_v his_o office_n but_o as_o his_o peril_n increase_v so_o do_v his_o fortitude_n and_o courage_n increase_v that_o he_o may_v still_o more_o bold_o go_v forward_o this_o thing_n boath_n the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o time_n and_o the_o assembly_n of_o people_n and_o the_o boldness_n in_o cry_v do_v testify_v for_o it_o be_v lykelye_o that_o then_o the_o servant_n and_o soldier_n which_o be_v send_v forth_o to_o take_v he_o be_v ready_a to_o lay_v hand_n on_o he_o bu_n therefore_o in_o the_o great_a assembly_n and_o in_o the_o most_o daungerouse_a peril_n jesus_n come_v four_o in_o the_o midst_n and_o with_o a_o constant_a mind_n geve_v testimony_n to_o the_o truth_n teach_v by_o his_o example_n what_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o minister_n of_o church_n c._n furthermore_o we_o must_v note_n that_o he_o withstand_v their_o violent_a rage_n which_o be_v of_o great_a force_n by_o the_o mighty_a power_n and_o defence_n of_o god_n only_o bu_n he_o stand_v constant_o to_o defend_v a_o seriouse_a and_o most_o grave_a matter_n appertain_v
have_v open_v and_o reveal_v to_o we_o the_o hide_a treasure_n of_o god_n they_o be_v worthy_a therefore_o to_o perish_v miserablye_o who_o be_v call_v gentle_o and_o love_o of_o christ_n wander_v else_o where_o out_o of_o his_o belly_n shall_v flow_v river_n bu_n by_o this_o he_o mean_v the_o plenty_n and_o abundance_n of_o all_o gift_n and_o good_a work_n c._n for_o in_o he_o he_o teach_v be_v store_n and_o sufficient_a to_o fill_v us._n the_o metaphor_n in_o show_n seem_v hard_a when_o he_o say_v that_o river_n of_o water_n of_o life_n shall_v flow_v out_o of_o the_o belly_n of_o the_o faithful_a notwithstanding_o the_o scence_n and_o meaning_n be_v plain_a enough_o that_o the_o beléeve_a shall_v never_o want_v any_o spiritual_a goodness_n he_o call_v that_o the_o water_n of_o life_n which_o in_o spring_v shall_v never_o decrease_v or_o wax_v dry_a as_o be_v say_v before_o the_o belly_n of_o the_o inward_a man_n be_v the_o conscience_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o by_o flood_n he_o mean_v the_o manifold_a grace_n of_o the_o spyrite_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o spiritual_a life_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o be_v short_a here_o be_v promise_v unto_o we_o as_o well_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spyrite_n as_o the_o plenty_n of_o the_o same_o 39_o but_o this_o speak_v he_o of_o the_o spyrite_n which_o they_o that_o believe_v on_o he_o shall_v receyve_v for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o yet_o there_o because_o jesus_n be_v not_o yet_o glorify_v but_o this_o speak_v he_o m._n because_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o the_o ignorant_a obscure_a and_o dark_a as_o parabolicall_a therefore_o it_o seem_v necessary_a to_o the_o evangelist_n to_o expound_v the_o same_o c._n the_o name_n of_o water_n be_v sometime_o give_v to_o the_o spirit_n because_o of_o cleanesse_n because_o it_o belong_v unto_o he_o to_o purge_v our_o fylthinesse_n but_o in_o this_o place_n and_o in_o such_o like_a there_o be_v not_o all_o one_o manner_n of_o speech_n and_o that_o because_o we_o be_v void_a of_o all_o humour_n &_o moistness_n of_o life_n until_o such_o time_n as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v water_v we_o with_o his_o spiritual_a and_o heavenlye_a dew_n and_o here_o be_v a_o figure_n call_v synecdoche_n because_o all_o the_o part_n of_o life_n be_v comprehend_v under_o this_o one_o word_n of_o water_n whereby_o also_o we_o gather_v that_o whosoever_o be_v not_o regenerate_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v count_v for_o dead_a man_n although_o they_o seem_v to_o themselves_o to_o have_v life_n for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o yet_o m._n these_o word_n show_v the_o cause_n wherefore_o it_o be_v say_v which_o they_o shall_v receyve_v and_o not_o rather_o which_o they_o that_o believe_v have_v receyve_v because_o say_v he_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o bu_n he_o speak_v not_o here_o of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v coequal_a and_o coeternall_a with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n m._n for_o it_o be_v write_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o heaven_n be_v make_v and_o all_o the_o power_n of_o they_o 33.6_o psal_n 33.6_o by_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n and_o the_o whole_a scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v testify_v no_o less_o of_o he_o than_o of_o christ_n the_o word_n of_o god_n neither_o do_v he_o speak_v simp_o concern_v his_o work_n and_o gift_n in_o the_o faithful_a as_o though_o before_o christ_n be_v gloryfy_v the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o work_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o godly_a as_o well_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o of_o the_o new_a when_o as_o he_o manifestlye_o declare_v himself_o in_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o patriarch_n in_o the_o godly_a king_n and_o in_o all_o those_o godly_a man_n which_o begin_v to_o cleave_v unto_o christ_n whether_o they_o be_v apostle_n or_o other_o &_o that_o many_o way_n c._n but_o the_o evangelist_n do_v deny_v that_o the_o same_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o after_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n be_v shed_v out_o upon_o 〈◊〉_d be_v open_o give_v so_o long_o as_o christ_n be_v in_o this_o world_n under_o the_o hum●●●_n base_a form_n of_o a_o servant_n and_o he_o forsake_v comparativelye_o as_o when_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v set_v against_o the_o old_a god_n promise_v his_o spirit_n to_o the_o faithful_a as_o if_o he_o have_v never_o give_v the_o same_o to_o the_o father_n then_o verilye_o the_o disciple_n receive_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o whereof_o come_v faith_n but_o of_o the_o spirit_n r._n and_o do_v not_o the_o apostle_n cast_v out_o develle_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o confess_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n before_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n be_v a_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o not_o of_o flesh_n c._n therefore_o the_o evangelist_n do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spyrite_n be_v give_v before_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o child_n of_o god_n but_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o same_o be_v not_o yet_o so_o manifest_a and_o evident_a as_o it_o shall_v be_v afterward_o for_o this_o be_v the_o principal_a ornament_n and_o bewtye_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o govern_v his_o church_n by_o his_o holy_a spyrite_n but_o he_o take_v then_o the_o just_a and_o solemn_a possession_n of_o his_o kingdom_n when_o he_o be_v exalt_v to_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n therefore_o if_o he_o defer_v the_o full_a exhibition_n of_o his_o spirit_n untyll_o that_o time_n spirit_n regeneration_n the_o fevite_z of_o the_o spirit_n but_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v here_o whether_o he_o mean_v the_o visible_a grace_n of_o the_o spyrite_n or_o regeneration_n which_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o adoption_n i_o answer_v the_o holy_a ghost_n appear_v which_o be_v promise_v at_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n in_o those_o visible_a gift_n as_o in_o a_o glass_n notwithstanding_o proper_o he_o speak_v here_o of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o which_o we_o be_v bear_v again_o in_o christ_n and_o be_v make_v new_a creature_n 40._o many_o of_o the_o people_n therefore_o when_o they_o hear_v this_o say_n say_v of●_n truth_n this_o be_v the_o prophet_n bu_n here_o be_v repeat_a 〈◊〉_d the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v receyve●●_n the_o world_n for_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v speak_v evidentlye_o and_o plain_o make_v the_o multitude_n diverslye_o affect_v in_o the_o which_o be_v both_o good_a and_o simple_a and_o also_o wicked_a and_o perverse_a hearer_n c._n whereupon_o some_o think_v one_o thing_n and_o some_o another_o there_o roase_a contention_n among_o the_o people_n and_o there_o be_v reckon_v up_o three_o sort_n of_o hearer_n of_o christ_n christ_n three_o sort_n of_o hearer_n of_o christ_n the_o first_o sort_n confess_v jesus_n to_o be_v a_o true_a prophet_n whereby_o we_o gather_v that_o they_o do_v not_o abhor_v his_o doctrine_n but_o how_o light_n and_o frivolous_a this_o confession_n be_v it_o appear_v thereby_o that_o they_o allow_v the_o teacher_n neither_o understand_v nor_o feel_v what_o he_o mean_v or_o speak_v for_o they_o can_v not_o trulye_o embrace_v christ_n as_o a_o prophet_n but_o they_o must_v also_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o author_n of_o their_o salvation_n notwithstanding_o in_o this_o they_o do_v well_o that_o they_o think_v some_o divine_a power_n to_o be_v in_o christ_n which_o cause_v they_o to_o reverence_v he_o for_o be_v thus_o apt_a to_o be_v teach_v they_o may_v easy_o have_v attain_a to_o faith_n as_o be_v say_v in_o another_o place_n 41._o but_o other_o say_v this_o be_v christ_n but_o some_o say_v shall_v christ_n come_v out_o of_o galilee_n but_o other_o say_v c_o these_o do_v better_a which_o plain_o confess_v christ_n m._n for_o they_o seem_v to_o profit_v better_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n than_o other_o and_o to_o be_v better_o instruct_v and_o learn_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n than_o other_o bu_n for_o they_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o true_a messiah_n promise_v before_o in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n which_o be_v a_o true_a confession_n for_o it_o comprehend_v the_o whole_a sum_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o the_o revelation_n thereof_o be_v say_v to_o depend_v not_o of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n 16.17_o mat._n 16.17_o but_o of_o the_o spyrite_n of_o god_n but_o some_o say_v shall_v christ_n c._n the_o third_o sort_n resist_v be_v evil_a and_o unbeléeving_a and_o corrupt_v with_o the_o leven_n of_o the_o pharisee_n which_o do_v not_o only_o think_v and_o speak_v otherwise_o than_o do_v the_o
c._n now_o follow_v the_o end_n and_o issue_n of_o all_o this_o platform_n if_o any_o man_n consider_v with_o himself_o what_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o priesthood_n be_v at_o that_o time_n how_o great_a their_o madness_n and_o also_o how_o great_a their_o preparation_n and_o on_o the_o other_o part_n how_o naked_a bare_a unprovided_a and_o destitude_v of_o all_o man_n help_n christ_n be_v there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v see_v but_o destruction_n m._n the_o pharise_n and_o high_a priest_n conspire_v tegether_o consult_v give_v commandment_n send_v forth_o soldier_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o do_v not_o only_o bring_v nothing_o to_o pass_v but_o also_o return_v home_n more_o trouble_v then_o before_o c._n therefore_o in_o that_o so_o strong_a a_o conspiracy_n of_o itself_o come_v to_o nothing_o and_o all_o they_o as_o wave_n of_o the_o sea_n break_v themselves_o with_o their_o own_o violence_n and_o force_n who_o see_v not_o that_o they_o be_v scatter_v by_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n bu_n for_o there_o be_v no_o counsel_n against_o the_o lord_n 2d_o pro._n 2d_o m._n and_o this_o be_v a_o lyvely_a image_n of_o those_o counsel_n and_o assemble_v which_o be_v not_o gather_v together_o in_o the_o lord_n 4●_n esa_n 4●_n a._n for_o only_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v stand_v and_o his_o will_n shall_v be_v do_v c._n for_o the_o lord_n be_v never_o change_v but_o be_v always_o like_o himself_o so_o that_o so_o often_o as_o he_o will_v he_o shall_v frustrate_v the_o devise_n of_o his_o enemy_n who_o although_o they_o have_v all_o thing_n at_o hand_n &_o be_v ready_a to_o bring_v their_o purpose_n to_o pass_v yet_o notwithstanding_o shall_v depart_v with_o loss_n of_o their_o labour_n and_o we_o have_v often_o time_n see_v that_o whatsoever_o the_o enemy_n have_v practise_v to_o destroy_v the_o gospel_n have_v be_v by_o the_o wonderful_a grace_n of_o god_n by_o and_o by_o make_v frustrate_a and_o void_a m._n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n more_o famous_a and_o manifest_a to_o all_o man_n ❧_o the_o eight_o chapter_n 1._o jesus_n go_v unto_o mount_n olivet_n r_o this_o history_n concern_v the_o adulterous_a woman_n contain_v between_o this_o and_o the_o twelve_o verse_n c._n be_v not_o know_v to_o the_o greek_n wheruppon_o many_o think_v that_o it_o be_v borrow_v from_o some_o other_o place_n and_o here_o insert_v but_o because_o it_o have_v be_v always_o receive_v of_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o be_v find_v in_o the_o most_o ancient_a book_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o contain_v nothing_o unworthy_a of_o the_o apostolical_a spirit_n b._n the_o same_o also_o may_v be_v read_v with_o great_a fruit_n r._n eusebius_n in_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n in_o the_o last_o chapter_n of_o his_o third_o book_n say_v that_o the_o same_o be_v wrighten_a after_o the_o hebrews_n but_o whatsoever_o he_o be_v that_o wright_n this_o story_n it_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v keep_v from_o perishinge_v for_o it_o teach_v very_o notable_o that_o all_o man_n how_o righteous_a so_o ever_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v in_o outward_a show_n be_v equalye_o and_o as_o much_o before_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n ungodly_a and_o subject_a to_o sin_n as_o the_o manifest_a wicked_a unto_o mount_n olivet_n b._n the_o lord_n be_v in_o jerusalem_n often_o time_n go_v aside_o into_o this_o mountain_n to_o pray_v and_o that_o most_o common_o in_o the_o night_n for_o in_o the_o day_n time_n he_o teach_v in_o the_o temple_n preach_v unto_o the_o people_n the_o grace_n of_o his_o heavenly_a father_n 21.37_o luk._n 21.37_o for_o there_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n that_o become_v he_o better_o or_o be_v more_o profitable_a for_o man_n see_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o he_o be_v everlasting_a life_n 17.3_o john_n 17.3_o concern_v prayer_n and_o his_o go_v aside_o to_o pray_v read_v the_o sixst_a verse_n of_o the_o sixst_a chapter_n of_o mathewe_n 2._o and_o early_o in_o the_o morning_n he_o come_v again_o into_o the_o temple_n and_o all_o the_o people_n come_v to_o he_o and_o he_o sit_v down_o and_o teach_v they_o and_o early_o in_o the_o morning_n m._n the_o evangelist_n here_o commend_v unto_o we_o boath_n the_o diligence_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o of_o the_o people_n he_o say_v not_o simple_o he_o come_v again_o into_o the_o temple_n but_o he_o say_v early_o in_o the_o morning_n he_o come_v again_o into_o the_o temple_n and_o he_o noat_v the_o diligence_n of_o the_o people_n when_o he_o say_v and_o all_o the_o people_n come_v to_o he_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n more_o plain_o say_v and_o all_o the_o people_n come_v to_o he_o into_o the_o temple_n 21.38_o luk._n 21.38_o to_o hear_v he_o bu_n therefore_o let_v slothful_a and_o idle_a man_n be_v ashamed_a of_o their_o negligence_n to_o who_o it_o be_v sweet_a and_o plesaunt_n to_o sleep_v in_o the_o manifest_a daylight_n and_o do_v seldom_o or_o never_o enter_v into_o the_o church_n or_o congregation_n of_o the_o godly_a let_v boath_n the_o teacher_n and_o the_o disciple_n learn_v that_o the_o morning_n tide_n be_v the_o most_o apt_a and_o convenient_a time_n to_o atchive_v great_a matter_n and_o to_o labour_n in_o divine_a and_o holy_a thing_n m._n the_o popish_a canon_n and_o monk_n do_v rush_v early_o into_o their_o temple_n but_o not_o with_o that_o mind_n &_o to_o that_o end_n that_o christ_n do_v christ_n go_v to_o see_v those_o sheep_n which_o he_o have_v begin_v to_o feed_v early_o in_o the_o morning_n but_o what_o these_o man_n seek_v in_o their_o temple_n the_o whole_a world_n know_v and_o he_o sit_v down_o and_o teach_v they_o bu_n he_o show_v that_o the_o church_n have_v not_o a_o more_o excellent_a treasure_n than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o godliness_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o ministry_n or_o service_n in_o the_o church_n more_o acceptable_a than_o teach_v god_n teach_v most_o acceptable_a seruic_fw-la to_o god_n in_o that_o christ_n teach_v syt_v the_o majesty_n of_o his_o doctrine_n be_v express_v howbeit_o we_o read_v not_o that_o he_o always_o teach_v sit_v as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n go_v before_o the_o seven_o and_o thirty_o verse_n a._n but_o it_o make_v no_o matter_n whether_o he_o that_o teach_v sit_v or_o stand_v so_o that_o he_o boulde_o preach_v unto_o the_o people_n of_o god_n wholesome_a doctrine_n 3._o and_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n bring_v unto_o he_o a_o woman_n take_v in_o adultery_n and_o when_o they_o have_v set_v she_o in_o the_o midst_n c._n the_o evangelist_n mean_v that_o this_o matter_n be_v devise_v among_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharise_n of_o set_n purpose_n to_o entrap_v and_o snare_v our_o saviour_n christ_n b_o they_o see_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v wonderful_a pitiful_a &_o gentle_a towards_o sinner_n and_o therefore_o they_o hope_v that_o he_o will_v set_v this_o adulterouse_a woman_n at_o lybertye_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o so_o to_o geve_v unto_o they_o occasion_n to_o be_v revenge_v on_o he_o as_o a_o breaker_n of_o god_n law_n c._n he_o mean_v the_o pharisées_fw-fr because_o they_o be_v principal_a in_o the_o order_n of_o the_o scribe_n m_o but_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o they_o bring_v the_o adulterouse_a woman_n alone_a and_o not_o the_o adulterer_n 22.22_o leni_fw-la 20.10_o deut._n 22.22_o see_v the_o law_n be_v make_v as_o well_o for_o adulterouse_a man_n as_o for_o adulterous_a woman_n that_o boath_n may_v be_v put_v to_o death_n it_o be_v not_o sertaine_a whether_o they_o take_v the_o man_n with_o the_o woman_n or_o no_o and_o if_o they_o do_v take_v they_o boath_n together_o why_o do_v they_o not_o aswell_o bring_v he_o as_o she_o but_o only_o because_o they_o bring_v the_o woman_n alone_a to_o the_o lord_n for_o some_o evell_a purpose_n but_o if_o we_o behold_v the_o corruption_n of_o this_o present_a age_n we_o shall_v find_v it_o most_o evident_a that_o at_o this_o day_n whoremongar_n and_o adulterouse_a man_n escape_v free_a for_o the_o most_o part_n and_o the_o woman_n only_o be_v punish_v special_o if_o the_o man_n be_v of_o any_o countenance_n substance_n or_o great_a parentage_n so_o that_o the_o weak_a vessel_n be_v ponish_v and_o the_o strongar_n go_v free_a law_n adultery_n ponish_v with_o death_n in_o the_o old_a law_n this_o inequality_n the_o law_n of_o god_n do_v not_o approve_v which_o appoint_v as_o well_o the_o man_n as_o the_o woman_n take_v in_o adultery_n to_o be_v punish_v by_o death_n 4._o they_o say_v unto_o he_o master_n this_o woman_n be_v take_v in_o adultery_n even_o as_o the_o deed_n be_v do_v b._n they_o salute_v he_o by_o the_o name_n of_o master_n but_o with_o the_o same_o affection_n &_o mind_n that_o they_o have_v 22.16_o mat._n 22.16_o when_o they_o demand_v of_o he_o the_o question_n concern_v tribute_n
please_v he_o and_o the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n not_o because_o either_o caiphas_n or_o pilate_n constrain_v he_o whereupon_o it_o be_v say_v the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n stand_v uppe_o and_o the_o ruler_n come_v together_o against_o the_o lord_n and_o against_o his_o christ_n and_o of_o a_o truth_n against_o thy_o holy_a child_n jesus_n who_o thou_o have_v anoint_v boath_n herode_fw-la and_o also_o pontius_n pilate_n with_o the_o gentile_n 4.27_o acts._n 4.27_o and_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n gather_v themselves_o together_o for_o to_o do_v whatsoever_o thy_o hand_n and_o thy_o counsel_n determine_v before_o to_o be_v do_v so_o all_o the_o godly_a be_v afflict_v not_o because_o their_o adversaries_n can_v do_v any_o thing_n by_o their_o own_o power_n against_o godly_a who_o be_v under_o the_o hand_n and_o most_o mighty_a protection_n of_o god_n but_o because_o so_o it_o please_v the_o will_n of_o their_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n the_o which_o will_n be_v execute_v by_o the_o wicked_a to_o their_o extreme_a destruction_n but_o to_o the_o great_a profit_n of_o the_o godly_a this_o commandment_n have_v i_o receyve_v m._n he_o now_o open_v the_o well_o spring_n of_o his_o power_n name_o his_o father_n commandment_n and_o by_o this_o commandment_n he_o understand_v that_o will_n of_o god_n and_o that_o eternal_a counsel_n by_o which_o he_o have_v determine_v to_o send_v his_o son_n into_o this_o world_n and_o to_o geve_v he_o to_o death_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n c._n of_o the_o which_o counsel_n of_o the_o father_n he_o therefore_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o he_o have_v so_o great_a care_n of_o our_o salvation_n that_o he_o have_v give_v to_o we_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n so_o dear_a and_o precious_a unto_o he_o and_o christ_n himself_o which_o come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o show_v himself_o obedient_a to_o his_o father_n confyrm_v this_o that_o he_o have_v no_o other_o respect_n in_o all_o thing_n than_o to_o do_v we_o good_a m._n therefore_o christ_n in_o all_o thing_n show_v himself_o obedient_a to_o his_o father_n hereupon_o it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o volume_n of_o thy_o book_n concern_v i_o that_o i_o shall_v do_v thy_o will_n 40.8_o psa_fw-la 40.8_o o_o my_o god_n i_o be_o content_a to_o do_v it_o a._n and_o hereafter_o he_o say_v the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n come_v and_o find_v nothing_o in_o i_o but_o that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o i_o love_v the_o father_n i3_n john_n i4_n i3_n and_o as_o the_o father_n command_v i_o so_o i_o do_v m._n this_o be_v true_a obedience_n which_o depend_v not_o only_o of_o the_o deed_n but_o also_o of_o the_o divine_a will_n 19_o there_o be_v a_o dissension_n therefore_o again_o among_o the_o jew_n for_o these_o say_n b._n the_o more_o that_o christ_n bewray_v his_o divinitye_n the_o more_o evidentlye_o appear_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o elect_v and_o the_o reprobate_n bu_n and_o as_o truth_n and_o piety_n be_v always_o like_o itself_o so_o falsehood_n and_o impiety_n differ_v not_o a_o straw_n breadth_n from_o itself_o c._n this_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o sermon_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o always_o win_v some_o disciple_n or_o other_o to_o himself_o but_o because_o his_o doctrine_n have_v many_o adversaries_n thereof_o come_v the_o contention_n that_o they_o which_o at_o the_o first_o be_v as_o it_o be_v one_o body_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v divide_v among_o themselves_o for_o with_o one_o consent_n all_o man_n profess_v that_o they_o worship_v the_o god_n of_o abraham_n and_o that_o they_o follow_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n unity_n christ_n the_o hand_n of_o unity_n but_o now_o when_o christ_n come_v among_o they_o they_o begin_v to_o disagree_v for_o his_o sake_n if_o so_o be_v that_o profession_n have_v be_v true_a christ_n which_o be_v the_o most_o excellent_a bond_n of_o charitye_n and_o who_o office_n it_o be_v to_o gather_v the_o disperse_v together_o will_v not_o have_v dissolve_v and_o break_v their_o consent_n and_o agreement_n but_o by_o the_o light_n of_o his_o gospel_n he_o bewray_v the_o hypocrisy_n of_o many_o who_o have_v only_o a_o false_a and_o counterfeit_n show_v boast_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n man_n contention_n come_v by_o wicked_a man_n thus_o also_o the_o wickedness_n of_o many_o man_n in_o these_o day_n bring_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o church_n be_v trouble_v with_o dissension_n and_o that_o contention_n be_v so_o fervent_a &_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o which_o trouble_v the_o peace_n lay_v the_o blame_n upon_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n call_v they_o scismatik_n for_o for_o this_o cause_n special_o the_o godly_a be_v offend_v at_o the_o papist_n because_o their_o doctrine_n have_v shake_v the_o quiet_a state_n of_o the_o church_n but_o if_o so_o be_v they_o will_v peaceablye_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o christ_n and_o will_v subscribe_v utno_fw-la the_o truth_n all_o contention_n &_o trouble_n will_v straight_o way_n be_v appease_v but_o see_v they_o frete_z and_o fume_n against_o christ_n and_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o godly_a witness_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v at_o rest_n except_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n may_v lie_v hide_v and_o christ_n may_v be_v banish_v from_o his_o kingdom_n they_o falselye_o object_v the_o fault_n of_o schism_n which_o all_o man_n see_v ought_v rather_o to_o be_v impute_v unto_o they_o therefore_o we_o must_v always_o consider_v and_o see_v in_o schismatic_n who_o they_o he_o which_o depart_v from_o god_n and_o his_o pure_a doctrine_n m._n and_o the_o evangelist_n in_o say_v that_o there_o arise_v a_o contention_n again_o send_v the_o reader_n to_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v declare_v in_o the_o chapter_n go_v before_o as_o in_o the_o seven_o and_o nine_o chapter_n 9.16_o joh._n 7.43_o john_n 9.16_o bu_n for_o there_o these_o very_o same_o jew_n withstand_v the_o manifest_a truth_n do_v cause_n no_o small_a trouble_n 20._o and_o many_o of_o they_o say_v he_o have_v the_o devil_n and_o be_v mad_a why_o hear_v you_o he_o m._n this_o cavil_v also_o the_o adversaries_n of_o christ_n use_v before_o c._n they_o do_v defame_n christ_n with_o the_o most_o odious_a reproach_n that_o they_o can_v devise_v that_o all_o man_n may_v abhor_v to_o hear_v he_o m._n for_o they_o can_v not_o abide_v that_o people_n shall_v hear_v he_o with_o delyte_n and_o admiration_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n they_o go_v about_o to_o turn_v away_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o simple_a from_o he_o that_o they_o may_v not_o hear_v he_o any_o more_o afterward_o c._n so_o the_o wicked_a lest_o they_o shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o geve_v place_n unto_o god_n do_v furiouslye_o contemn_v he_o and_o do_v stir_v up_o other_o also_o to_o the_o like_a madness_n lest_o that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n at_o any_o time_n shall_v be_v hear_v with_o silence_n and_o quietness_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v able_a sufficient_o to_o defend_v itself_o against_o all_o caville_n m._n these_o wicked_a one_o be_v very_o like_a unto_o they_o which_o do_v privitye_n slander_v the_o minister_n of_o christ_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v hear_v 21._o other_o say_v these_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o he_o that_o have_v the_o devil_n can_v the_o devil_n open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o blind_a bu_n they_o which_o love_v the_o truth_n constantlye_o defend_v the_o same_o m._n and_o do_v defend_v christ_n against_o the_o slander_v of_o the_o wicked_a by_o two_o argument_n the_o first_o be_v by_o his_o find_a and_o unblameable_a doctrine_n the_o other_o be_v take_v of_o the_o present_a power_n of_o his_o miracle_n for_o he_o which_o have_v a_o devil_n can_v not_o hide_v his_o madness_n but_o bewray_v the_o same_o both_o by_o word_n and_o deed_n for_o a_o man_n which_o be_v possess_v with_o a_o devil_n can_v neither_o speak_v nor_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o one_o that_o have_v his_o wit_n can_v do_v c._n that_o therefore_o which_o these_o good_a man_n say_v be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v require_v that_o judgement_n may_v be_v give_v according_a to_o the_o matter_n itself_o for_o truth_n as_o we_o say_v before_o do_v always_o sufficient_o defend_v itself_o and_o this_o be_v the_o only_a buckeler_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o the_o wicked_a can_v never_o bring_v to_o pass_v but_o that_o the_o power_n and_o wisdom_n of_o god_n shall_v shine_v in_o the_o gospel_n r._n also_o this_o variety_n of_o judgement_n concern_v christ_n be_v write_v for_o our_o learning_n that_o we_o may_v learn_v the_o nature_n of_o this_o world_n for_o the_o world_n must_v be_v judge_v of_o christ_n but_o behold_v now_o it_o usurp_v authority_n unto_o itself_o to_o judge_v christ_n how_o great_a therefore_o
have_v foresee_v &_o appoint_v but_o we_o must_v note_n that_o the_o simple_a and_o bare_a forknewledge_n of_o god_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o these_o thing_n howbeit_o here_o we_o must_v not_o have_v so_o much_o consideration_n of_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n as_o of_o judgement_n and_o vengeance_n neither_o do_v god_n look_v down_o &_o consider_v from_o heaven_n what_o man_n will_v do_v but_o he_o pronounce_v what_o he_o himself_o will_v do_v name_o that_o he_o will_v strike_v the_o wicked_a with_o blindness_n &_o giddiness_n that_o he_o may_v take_v vengeance_n upon_o their_o wickedness_n for_o here_o the_o inferior_a cause_n be_v noated_a why_o god_n will_v have_v his_o word_n which_o by_o nature_n be_v whoalsome_n to_o be_v perilous_a and_o deadly_a to_o the_o jew_n name_o for_o that_o they_o have_v so_o deserve_v by_o their_o wickedness_n it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o shun_v this_o punishment_n when_o god_n have_v once_o determine_v to_o cast_v they_o into_o a_o reprobate_a scence_n and_o to_o turn_v the_o light_n of_o his_o word_n into_o darkness_n for_o this_o latter_a prophesy_n be_v unlyke_a to_o the_o first_o in_o this_o because_o there_o the_o prophet_n affirm_v that_o no_o other_o do_v believe_v than_o those_o who_o god_n do_v illuminate_v according_a to_o his_o good_a pleasure_n the_o cause_n whereof_o do_v not_o appear_v for_o see_v of_o right_a and_o equity_n all_o man_n be_v lose_v and_o damn_a god_n may_v according_o to_o his_o goodness_n save_o who_o he_o will_v from_o among_o the_o rest_n but_o here_o he_o make_v mention_v of_o the_o obduration_n by_o which_o god_n take_v vengeance_n upon_o the_o wickedness_n of_o a_o unthankful_a people_n who_o so_o do_v not_o observe_v and_o consider_v these_o degree_n do_v confound_v amiss_o dyvers_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o we_o have_v expound_v this_o place_n of_o esaias_n in_o our_o exposition_n upon_o the_o thirtéene_a chapter_n of_o mathewe_n begin_v at_o the_o fowretéene_a verse_n 41._o such_o thing_n say_v esaias_n when_o he_o see_v his_o glory_n and_o speak_v of_o he_o m._n this_o the_o evangelist_n add_v least_o any_o man_n shall_v say_v to_o what_o purpose_n do_v thou_o allege_v this_o place_n the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o the_o man_n in_o his_o time_n and_o therefore_o they_o serve_v nothing_o to_o this_o purpose_n c._n this_o cogitation_n john_n prevent_v plain_o show_v that_o the_o prophet_n be_v send_v to_o be_v a_o teacher_n not_o for_o one_o age_n but_o rather_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n be_v show_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o witness_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v under_o his_o reign_n and_o kingdom_n for_o to_o what_o end_n do_v the_o prophetical_a revelation_n serve_v but_o only_o to_o delyver_v as_o it_o be_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n to_o other_o that_o which_o they_o have_v receyve_v from_o god_n and_o the_o evangelist_n take_v this_o as_o grant_v unto_o he_o that_o esaias_n see_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n whereupon_o he_o gather_v that_o he_o apply_v his_o doctrine_n to_o the_o state_n of_o his_o kingdom_n which_o be_v to_o come_v a._n as_o touch_v the_o time_n in_o the_o which_o the_o prophet_n see_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n some_o refer_v it_o to_o that_o time_n in_o the_o which_o vzias_n the_o king_n die_v 6.1_o esay_n 6.1_o for_o then_o the_o prophet_n see_v the_o lord_n sit_v upon_o a_o high_a throne_n and_o the_o skyrte_n of_o his_o clothing_n fill_v the_o temple_n the_o seraphin_n stand_v upon_o it_o everye_o one_o have_v six_o wing_n with_o twain_o he_o cover_v his_o face_n and_o with_o twain_o he_o cover_v his_o foot_n and_o with_o twain_o he_o do_v flee_v and_o one_o cry_v to_o another_o and_o say_v holy_a holy_a holy_a be_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n the_o whoale_n world_n be_v full_a of_o his_o glory_n by_o this_o vision_n the_o purpose_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v to_o show_v a_o view_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n m._n but_o this_o also_o may_v be_v refer_v to_o that_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o three_o and_o fiftye_a chapter_n of_o esai_n for_o then_o the_o prophet_n see_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o spirit_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o arm_n of_o the_o lord_n 42._o nevertheless_o among_o the_o chief_a ruler_n also_o many_o beleve_v on_o he_o but_o because_o of_o the_o pharisee_n they_o do_v not_o confess_v he_o jest_n they_o shall_v be_v excomunicate_a b._n because_o the_o evangelist_n have_v speak_v of_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o the_o jew_n because_o they_o can_v not_o believe_v on_o the_o lord_n he_o do_v very_o well_o add_v this_o by_o which_o he_o do_v show_v that_o all_o be_v not_o so_o reject_v but_o that_o many_o of_o the_o ruler_n also_o beléeve_v one_o the_o lord_n how_o be_v it_o they_o be_v but_o weak_a as_o yet_o and_o lover_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o world_n c._n a_o worthy_a example_n very_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o impiety_n have_v once_o get_v the_o upper_a hand_n be_v a_o certain_a general_a plague_n which_o by_o the_o contagion_n thereof_o infect_v all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o body_n therefore_o it_o be_v the_o singular_a gift_n of_o god_n when_o some_o remain_v sincere_a among_o a_o corrupt_a people_n howbeit_o the_o same_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v see_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o world_n for_o although_o impiety_n and_o the_o contempt_n of_o god_n do_v abound_v and_o although_o a_o great_a number_n go_v about_o to_o banish_v away_o quite_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n notwithstanding_o it_o shall_v find_v some_o sanctuary_n and_o receiver_n and_o so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o faith_n have_v certain_a rest_a place_n least_o it_o shall_v be_v quite_o drive_v out_o of_o the_o world_n world_n faith_n can_v be_v bani●●●_n out_o of_o 〈◊〉_d world_n m._n so_o in_o the_o time_n of_o elias_n there_o seem_v to_o be_v almost_o none_o which_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n so_o that_o elias_n be_v think_v to_o remain_v alone_a when_o as_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v seven_o thousand_o man_n in_o israel_n which_o have_v not_o bow_v their_o knee_n before_o baal_n 19_o 1._o king_n 19_o c._n this_o word_n also_o betoken_v a_o emphasys_n and_o vehemency_n for_o prince_n and_o ruler_n for_o the_o most_o part_n wear_v such_o deadly_a enemy_n and_o hater_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o it_o be_v incredible_a that_o some_o one_o among_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v find_v faithful_a the_o more_o wonderful_a therefore_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o pierce_v in_o thither_o whether_o nothing_o else_o can_v come_v howbeit_o this_o be_v not_o the_o wickedness_n of_o one_o age_n only_o that_o the_o rulars_n be_v obstinate_a and_o rebellious_a against_o christ_n for_o honour_n riches_n and_o dignity_n have_v always_o pride_n their_o handmaid_n wherefore_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o be_v humble_a and_o lowlye_o in_o their_o own_o eye_n who_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o pride_n and_o arrogancye_n scarcelye_a know_v themselves_o to_o be_v man_n whatsoever_o he_o be_v that_o excel_v other_o in_o this_o world_n will_v not_o if_o he_o be_v wise_a trust_v unto_o his_o mightiness_n lest_o the_o same_o be_v a_o let_v unto_o he_o a._n 1.10_o jam._n 1.10_o let_v he_o that_o be_v rich_a say_v saint_n james_n rejoice_v that_o he_o be_v bring_v low_o for_o he_o shall_v pass_v away_o as_o a_o flower_n of_o the_o field_n when_o he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v many_o we_o must_v not_o so_o understand_v the_o same_o as_o though_o the_o one_o half_a or_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o ruler_n beléeve_v for_o they_o be_v compare_v to_o other_o of_o who_o there_o be_v a_o great_a multitude_n they_o be_v but_o a_o few_o but_o those_o same_o be_v a_o great_a many_o if_o they_o be_v consider_v in_o themselves_o but_o because_o of_o the_o phariseis_n this_o the_o evangelist_n mislike_v in_o they_o for_o that_o they_o do_v not_o bold_o confess_v their_o faith_n c._n and_o therewithal_o noat_v how_o great_a the_o imbecility_n of_o faith_n be_v in_o they_o who_o be_v luke_o warm_a or_o rather_o key_n can_v for_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n can_v be_v divide_v from_o confession_n 10.10_o faith_n and_o confession_n link_v together_o rom._n 10.10_o for_o with_o the_o heart_n we_o beeléeve_v to_o righteousenesse_n and_o with_o the_o mouth_n we_o confess_v to_o salvation_n and_o it_o can_v be_v that_o faith_n be_v once_o kindle_v in_o the_o hart_n shall_v not_o burn_v &_o cast_v forth_o his_o flame_n therefore_o the_o evangelist_n geve_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o these_o prince_n embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n because_o they_o know_v the_o same_o to_o be_v come_v from_o god_n but_o yet_o that_o
this_o faith_n be_v not_o lively_a in_o they_o and_o not_o so_o virtuous_a as_o it_o beecame_v the_o same_o because_o christ_n geve_v not_o unto_o his_o disciple_n the_o spirit_n of_o fear_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o constancy_n insomuche_o that_o they_o dare_v bold_o confess_v that_o which_o they_o have_v learn_v of_o he_o and_o although_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o these_o man_n be_v quite_o dumb_a yet_o notwithstanding_o because_o they_o make_v no_o true_a confession_n the_o evangelist_n simple_o deni_v that_o they_o profess_v their_o faith_n for_o this_o have_v be_v true_a and_o lawful_a confession_n to_o have_v open_o give_v their_o name_n and_o profess_a christ_n wherefore_o let_v no_o man_n flatter_v himself_o which_o in_o any_o part_n hyde_v and_o dissemble_v his_o faith_n least_o he_o shall_v incur_v the_o displeasure_n and_o hatred_n of_o man_n for_o although_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v odiouse_a that_o fear_n be_v not_o excusable_a which_o make_v we_o slide_v from_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o name_n though_o but_o the_o breadth_n of_o a_o hair_n bu_n a_o great_a number_n at_o this_o day_n have_v the_o very_a same_o disease_n that_o these_o ruler_n have_v for_o they_o understand_v the_o doctrine_n of_o truth_n they_o know_v the_o lawful_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o papistry_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o in_o the_o papacy_n the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o minister_v accord_v to_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o these_o thing_n they_o see_v and_o know_v but_o yet_o nevertheless_o for_o fear_n and_o the_o love_n of_o temporal_a thing_n they_o communicate_v with_o the_o very_a same_o they_o halt_v on_o both_o side_n and_o do_v not_o bold_o confess_v the_o truth_n all_o these_o man_n very_o do_v great_o offend_v and_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v confirm_v in_o their_o error_n to_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o so_o be_v they_o retain_v that_o which_o be_v true_a in_o their_o heart_n and_o do_v think_v well_o in_o their_o mind_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n have_v a_o like_n of_o these_o abomination_n institute_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o come_v unto_o the_o mass_n not_o as_o to_o the_o mass_n but_o as_o unto_o the_o lord_n supper_n god_n hate_v that_o hypocritical_a dissimulation_n and_o love_v truth_n and_o sincerity_n concern_v excommunication_n read_v the_o nine_o chapter_n go_v before_o beginning_n at_o the_o .22_o verse_n 43._o for_o they_o love_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n more_o than_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n r._n thou_o may_v see_v in_o this_o place_n the_o cause_n why_o few_o of_o the_o ruler_n mighty_a man_n and_o wise_a man_n do_v not_o sincerelye_o confess_v the_o gospel_n because_o the_o gospel_n bring_v with_o it_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o forsake_v of_o earthly_a good_n now_o see_v the_o ruler_n can_v not_o abide_v to_o forsake_v their_o tyranny_n and_o see_v it_o seem_v foolish_a to_o the_o wise_a man_n to_o resign_v the_o wisdom_n of_o reason_n to_o the_o bare_a and_o weak_a word_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o have_v ever_o to_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o very_o few_o mighty_a and_o wise_a man_n true_o confess_v christ_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o sainte_n paul_n behold_v your_o call_a brother_n how_o that_o not_o many_o wise_a man_n after_o the_o flesh_n not_o many_o mighty_a not_o many_o of_o high_a degree_n be_v call_v but_o god_n have_v choose_v the_o foolish_a thing_n of_o this_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o wise_a c._n the_o evangelist_n lay_v no_o superstition_n to_o these_o mean_v charge_n but_o only_o say_v that_o they_o seek_v to_o avoid_v the_o reproach_n and_o dispraise_n of_o man_n for_o if_o so_o be_v ambition_n prevayl_v more_o with_o they_o than_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v delyver_v by_o a_o certain_a light_a fear_n of_o conscience_n now_o let_v the_o reader_n note_n how_o great_o god_n mislike_v and_o condemn_v their_o fear_n who_o dissemble_v their_o faith_n before_o man_n for_o fear_n of_o displeasure_n what_o worse_a thing_n can_v there_o be_v yea_o what_o can_v be_v more_o beastly_a than_o to_o prefer_v the_o vain_a like_n and_o commendation_n of_o man_n before_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o he_o pronounce_v all_o those_o to_o be_v such_o who_o forsake_v the_o displeasure_n of_o man_n when_o they_o shall_v confess_v a_o pure_a &_o true_a faith_n and_o that_o just_o for_o the_o apostell_n commend_v the_o invinsyble_a constancy_n of_o moses_n 27._o heb._n ●i_fw-la 27._o say_v that_o he_o endure_v even_o as_o though_o he_o have_v see_v he_o which_o be_v invisible_a by_o which_o word_n he_o geve_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o when_o a_o man_n fasten_v his_o eye_n upon_o god_n his_o heart_n will_v be_v invincible_a &_o more_o fast_a than_o a_o adamant_n stoan_n herupon_o therefore_o come_v that_o cowardliness_n which_o make_v we_o to_o fall_v to_o false_a dissimulation_n because_o we_o have_v whole_o respect_n unto_o this_o world_n for_o the_o sincere_a aspect_n and_o behold_v of_o god_n do_v drive_v away_o all_o smoke_n and_o vanity_n of_o riches_n and_o honour_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o a_o small_a and_o venial_a offence_n as_o some_o imagine_v to_o deny_v christ_n see_v the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o this_o place_n say_v that_o those_o ruler_n which_o confess_v not_o christ_n love_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n more_o than_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n bu_n and_o christ_n himself_o say_v he_o which_o deni_v i_o before_o man_n shall_v be_v deny_v of_o i_o before_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n 10.33_o mat._n 10.33_o c._n to_o love_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n in_o this_o place_n signify_v to_o desire_v to_o be_v in_o estimation_n and_o favour_n among_o man_n therefore_o the_o evangelist_n mean_v that_o these_o ruler_n be_v so_o addict_v unto_o the_o world_n that_o they_o rather_o desire_v to_o please_v man_n then_o god_n r._n the_o praise_n of_o man_n be_v to_o be_v count_v honest_a good_a and_o wise_a the_o glory_n and_o praise_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v object_v contemn_v scorn_a crucify_a and_o to_o be_v cruel_o slay_v for_o by_o these_o mean_v christ_n enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o father_n and_o the_o father_n by_o they_o be_v glorify_v in_o the_o world_n he_o therefore_o which_o prefer_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n before_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n be_v vain_a and_o miserable_a see_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n tend_v to_o reproache_v and_o shame_n but_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n bring_v to_o everlasting_a life_n 44._o jesus_n cry_v and_o say_v he_o that_o believe_v on_o i_o believe_v not_o on_o i_o but_o on_o he_o that_o send_v i_o m._n all_o this_o place_n contain_v a_o serious_a and_o summarie_a declaration_n by_o which_o the_o lord_n make_v plain_a protestation_n concern_v himself_o and_o his_o dispensation_n as_o that_o he_o do_v not_o defend_v his_o own_o cause_n that_o he_o come_v not_o at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n but_o that_o he_o be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n that_o he_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n send_v to_o do_v good_a and_o not_o harm_n that_o he_o speak_v nothing_o of_o himself_o and_o therefore_o that_o they_o which_o believe_v in_o he_o beeleéue_a not_o in_o he_o but_o in_o the_o father_n which_o send_v he_o and_o that_o he_o judge_v not_o the_o unbelieved_a but_o that_o they_o must_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o word_n which_o he_o have_v preach_v and_o by_o this_o his_o serious_a contestation_n his_o purpose_n be_v in_o plain_a word_n to_o gyve_v his_o last_o farewell_n to_o this_o blind_a and_o obstinate_a people_n to_o lay_v the_o blame_n of_o unbelefe_n upon_o their_o own_o head_n and_o manifestlye_o to_o testefie_v of_o his_o righteousness_n and_o innocence_n and_o this_o he_o do_v not_o symp_o and_o in_o the_o ear_n of_o one_o or_o two_o but_o free_o and_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n which_o the_o evangelist_n noat_v by_o these_o word_n jesus_n cry_v and_o say_v so_o do_v the_o saint_n of_o god_n in_o old_a time_n protest_v before_o the_o people_n show_v that_o they_o have_v omit_v nothing_o 20.33_o deut_n 32_o 1._o josua_n 23.4_o king_n 12_o 3._o act._n 20.33_o which_o pertain_v to_o the_o office_n commit_v unto_o they_o as_o moses_n josua_n samuel_n and_o paul_n b._n also_o the_o purpose_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v by_o his_o example_n speak_v of_o himself_o with_o so_o loud_a a_o voice_n than_o the_o which_o nothing_o greve_v more_o the_o pharise_n to_o incourag_n those_o fearful_a ruler_n which_o believe_v on_o he_o that_o with_o he_o they_o may_v despise_v the_o pharise_n in_o respect_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o may_v do_v this_o he_o bring_v a_o most_o urgent_a and_o strong_a reason_n affirminge_v that_o
even_o as_o the_o father_n bid_v i_o so_o i_o speak_v r._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v when_o i_o call_v myself_o the_o well_o of_o life_n the_o quicken_a bread_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n i_o speak_v these_o thing_n because_o my_o father_n so_o command_v i_o to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o which_o will_v drink_v which_o will_v be_v fill_v which_o will_v see_v rise_v again_o and_o live_v everlastinglye_o may_v come_v unto_o i_o and_o believe_v in_o i_o a._n for_o these_o thing_n i_o speak_v that_o you_o may_v attain_v to_o everlasting_a salvation_n through_o i_o ❧_o the_o xiij_o chapter_n 1_o before_o the_o feast_n of_o passover_n when_o jesus_n know_v that_o his_o hour_n be_v come_v that_o he_o shall_v depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n unto_o the_o father_n when_o he_o love_v he_o which_o be_v in_o the_o world_n unto_o the_o end_n he_o love_v they_o before_o the_o feast_n of_o passover_n b._n the_o other_o euangelyste_n in_o this_o place_n bring_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n and_o the_o whole_a mystery_n hereof_o be_v ordain_v to_o this_o end_n that_o by_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v and_o by_o the_o cup_n which_o we_o bless_v we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o whereby_o also_o the_o lord_n do_v more_o and_o more_o live_v in_o we_o and_o we_o in_o he_o therefore_o see_v saint_n john_n have_v already_o speak_v of_o the_o lord_n word_n concern_v the_o true_a perticipation_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o his_o sixth_o chapter_n he_o omit_v here_o the_o narration_n of_o the_o supper_n for_o the_o right_n of_o the_o eucharist_n begin_v long_o before_o to_o be_v familiar_a and_o well_o know_v to_o all_o christian_n pretermit_v therefore_o those_o thing_n which_o pertain_v to_o the_o eucharist_n c._n and_o many_o other_o thing_n also_o which_o he_o know_v be_v put_v down_o by_o matthew_n and_o the_o rest_n he_o take_v in_o hand_n to_o entreat_v of_o that_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v omit_v as_o of_o this_o stoarie_a concern_v the_o wash_n of_o the_o disciple_n when_o jesus_n know_v that_o his_o hour_n be_v come_v m._n the_o evangelist_n write_v this_o to_o forewarn_v the_o reader_n that_o he_o think_v not_o that_o any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o shall_v read_v in_o the_o chapter_n follow_v happen_v without_o the_o foresight_n and_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n for_o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o suffer_v a._n judas_n very_o the_o disciple_n not_o know_v of_o the_o same_o conspire_v with_o the_o ruler_n and_o high_a priest_n to_o betray_v jesus_n but_o the_o same_o be_v not_o unknowen_a unto_o christ_n whereupon_o it_o be_v say_v hereafter_o and_o jesus_n know_v all_o thing_n that_o shall_v come_v on_o he_o go_v forth_o therefore_o so_o often_o as_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n shall_v practice_v any_o thing_n against_o we_o let_v we_o commit_v all_o thing_n unto_o he_o who_o can_v provide_v for_o we_o and_o our_o matter_n well_o enough_o that_o i_o shall_v depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n c._n this_o be_v a_o speech_n worthy_a to_o be_v noated_a for_o it_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o know_v his_o death_n to_o be_v a_o passage_n unto_o the_o heavenlye_a kingdom_n of_o god_n wherefore_o if_o he_o make_v haste_n thither_o do_v not_o let_v to_o love_v his_o disciple_n as_o he_o be_v wont_a there_o be_v no_o cause_n now_o why_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o his_o affection_n be_v alter_v and_o now_o see_v he_o be_v the_o first_o béegotten_v among_o the_o dead_a this_o definition_n of_o death_n pertain_v to_o the_o whoale_n body_n of_o the_o church_n because_o it_o be_v a_o passage_n unto_o god_n from_o the_o which_o the_o faithful_a be_v as_o yet_o pilgrim_n m._n therefore_o let_v we_o so_o think_v and_o speak_v of_o our_o death_n 5.4_o 2._o cor._n 5.4_o that_o we_o may_v also_o call_v the_o same_o a_o passage_n out_o of_o this_o world_n unto_o the_o father_n let_v we_o consider_v who_o and_o what_o this_o world_n be_v and_o we_o shall_v desyer_n the_o death_n of_o the_o body_n because_o by_o the_o same_o we_o go_v out_o of_o this_o world_n into_o a_o most_o happy_a estate_n void_a of_o all_o trouble_n sorrow_n affliction_n and_o pain_n it_o make_v very_o much_o to_o the_o purpose_n that_o he_o use_v this_o word_n father_n to_o go_v out_o of_o this_o world_n which_o be_v a_o vale_n of_o misery_n and_o full_a of_o wickedness_n and_o so_o pass_v not_o to_o the_o worse_o but_o unto_o the_o better_o and_o not_o simple_o to_o the_o better_o but_o to_o the_o father_n also_o be_v such_o a_o notable_a benefit_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v afflict_v and_o oppress_v in_o this_o world_n can_v wish_v for_o nothing_o better_a unto_o the_o end_n he_o love_v they_o c._n although_o the_o euaungeliste_n do_v hereafter_o more_o plain_o declare_v to_o what_o end_n christ_n wash_v his_o disciple_n foot_n yet_o notwithstanding_o hear_v he_o beegin_v to_o show_v afore_o hand_n in_o one_o word_n that_o by_o this_o sign_n he_o will_v have_v his_o constant_a and_o everlasting_a love_n declare_v with_o the_o which_o he_o once_o love_v they_o that_o when_o they_o have_v lose_v his_o presence_n and_o company_n yet_o they_o may_v be_v sertain_o sure_a that_o he_o be_v not_o overwhelm_v in_o death_n the_o which_o persuasion_n also_o ought_v now_o to_o clean_o in_o our_o heart_n the_o word_n be_v that_o christ_n have_v love_v his_o disciple_n which_o wear_v in_o the_o world_n wherefore_o although_o we_o seem_v to_o be_v far_o of_o from_o christ_n yet_o notwithstanding_o let_v we_o know_v that_o he_o behould_v we_o because_o he_o love_v his_o that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n for_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o now_o bear_v the_o same_o affection_n towards_o we_o which_o he_o retain_v even_o at_o this_o very_a point_n of_o death_n m._n but_o the_o original_a root_n and_o cause_n be_v in_o christ_n himself_o and_o not_o in_o his_o disciple_n if_o so_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o love_n have_v be_v in_o the_o disciple_n it_o have_v not_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n it_o be_v necessary_a therefore_o that_o the_o same_o rest_n in_o christ_n who_o love_v those_o that_o be_v he_o with_o unspeable_a love_n unto_o the_o end_n cyr._n and_o verilye_o when_o he_o may_v have_v escape_v the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o pain_n of_o the_o cross_n he_o so_o love_v he_o that_o he_o refuse_v not_o to_o dye_v for_o the_o life_n of_o all_o man_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o most_o perfect_v love_v our_o saviour_n christ_n himself_o testify_v this_o be_v my_o commandment_n that_o you_o love_v one_o another_o 15.13_o joh._n 15.13_o even_o as_o i_o have_v love_v you_o great_a love_n can_v no_o man_n have_v than_o this_o that_o a_o man_n shall_v geve_v his_o life_n for_o his_o friend_n 2._o and_o when_o supper_n be_v do_v and_o that_o the_o devil_n have_v now_o put_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o judas_n iscariot_n simons_n son_n to_o betray_v he_o m._n there_o be_v some_o which_o think_v that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v thus_o red_a and_o supper_n be_v prepare_v for_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v whether_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v after_o supper_n or_o in_o supper_n time_n aug._n it_o be_v very_o likely_a that_o supper_n be_v not_o full_o end_v that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o table_n be_v not_o yet_o take_v away_o see_v it_o follow_v by_o and_o by_o that_o the_o lord_n take_v a_o morsel_n of_o bread_n and_o offer_v the_o same_o to_o judas_n and_o that_o the_o devil_n have_v now_o put_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o judas_n c._n this_o the_o evangelist_n have_v add_v not_o only_o to_o show_v the_o wonderful_a patience_n of_o christ_n who_o voutsafe_v to_o wash_v such_o a_o wicked_a and_o false_a traitor_n foot_n but_o also_o that_o he_o seek_v occasion_n to_o use_v that_o time_n in_o the_o which_o he_o shall_v finish_v the_o last_o act_n of_o his_o life_n béeinge_v never_o unto_o death_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o judas_n go_v about_o to_o betray_v christ_n by_o the_o impulsion_n of_o the_o devil_n he_o do_v it_o to_o express_v the_o cruelty_n and_o hainousenes_n of_o the_o fault_n for_o this_o be_v more_o than_o a_o horrible_a and_o tragical_a fact_n in_o the_o which_o the_o efficacy_n of_o satan_n declare_v itself_o b._n insomuch_o that_o it_o may_v seem_v not_o to_o come_v from_o man_n mind_n c._n it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o man_n commit_v no_o manner_n of_o evell_a whereunto_o the_o devil_n do_v not_o stir_v he_o but_o as_o the_o offence_n be_v more_o detestable_a and_o haynouse_a so_o the_o fury_n of_o
in_o that_o he_o make_v small_a account_n of_o the_o benefit_n already_o receive_v for_o he_o speak_v as_o though_o he_o have_v receive_v no_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o no_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n therefore_o here_o also_o he_o be_v just_o reprehend_v of_o christ_n for_o he_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v bestow_v upon_o he_o before_o howbeit_o under_o the_o person_n of_o one_o man_n he_o also_o admonish_v all_o his_o disciple_n that_o be_v mindful_a of_o the_o grace_n receyve_v they_o do_v consider_v what_o be_v needful_a for_o they_o as_o yet_o in_o time_n to_o come_v first_o of_o all_o he_o say_v that_o the_o faithful_a be_v wholye_a clean_o not_o that_o they_o be_v clean_o through_o every_o part_n so_o that_o they_o shall_v no_o more_o have_v any_o spot_n in_o they_o but_o because_o they_o be_v cleanse_v in_o the_o special_a part_n the_o kingdom_n be_v take_v from_o sin_n that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n may_v have_v the_o right_a pre-eminence_n even_o as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v that_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v sound_o because_o it_o be_v infect_v with_o no_o general_a disease_n therefore_o we_o must_v declare_v ourselves_o to_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n by_o newness_n of_o life_n see_v he_o preach_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o purity_n in_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n moreover_o this_o other_o similitude_n also_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o present_a matter_n lest_o the_o wash_n of_o foot_n shall_v be_v reject_v of_o peter_n as_o vain_a and_o absurd_a for_o as_o christ_n wash_v from_o the_o head_n to_o the_o foot_n those_o who_o he_o make_v his_o disciple_n evenso_fw-la in_o those_o who_o he_o have_v cleanse_v the_o low_a part_n must_v be_v daily_o purge_v for_o the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v not_o whole_o regenerate_v the_o first_o day_n that_o they_o shall_v desire_v nothing_o but_o heavenly_a life_n but_o have_v rather_o the_o relic_n of_o flesh_n abide_v in_o they_o with_o the_o which_o all_o their_o life_n time_n they_o have_v a_o contynuall_a battle_n therefore_o all_o the_o affection_n and_o care_n of_o this_o life_n be_v metophoricallye_o call_v foot_n for_o if_o so_o be_v the_o spirit_n possess_v all_o the_o part_n of_o man_n we_o shall_v have_v nothing_o to_o do_v any_o more_o with_o the_o spot_v of_o this_o world_n 4.22_o ecles_n 3_o 5._o ephe._n 4.22_o a._n but_o christ_n shall_v always_o find_v matter_n in_o we_o to_o purge_v for_o the_o which_o cause_n we_o be_v command_v to_o mortifye_v our_o member_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o put_v of_o the_o old_a man_n untyll_o such_o time_n as_o we_o be_v thorough_o cleanse_v c._n here_o therefore_o christ_n speak_v not_o of_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o of_o renovation_n the_o which_o christ_n by_o little_a and_o little_a and_o by_o continual_a degree_n deliver_v those_o that_o be_v he_o quite_o and_o clean_o from_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o you_o be_v clean_o but_o not_o all_o c._n this_o proposition_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o minor_a in_o the_o silogisme_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o wash_n of_o foot_n proper_o become_v they_o r._n but_o how_o be_v they_o clean_a which_o a_o little_a after_o deny_a christ_n we_o say_v even_o now_o that_o this_o must_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n verilye_o those_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v elect_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v always_o clean_o 1.7_o ●_o joh._n 1.7_o for_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v make_v we_o clean_o from_o all_o sin_n but_o in_o themselves_o they_o be_v sinner_n ronneawaye_n and_o apostatas_fw-la au._n for_o the_o very_a humane_a affection_n without_o the_o which_o we_o live_v not_o in_o this_o mortal_a life_n be_v as_o it_o be_v foot_n when_o we_o be_v affect_v with_o human_a thing_n and_o we_o be_v so_o affect_v that_o if_o so_o be_v we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o us._n therefore_o he_o do_v daily_o wash_v our_o foot_n who_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o and_o we_o daily_o confess_v in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n when_o we_o say_v forgeve_v we_o our_o dette_n as_o we_o forgeve_v our_o debtor_n that_o we_o have_v need_n to_o wash_v our_o foot_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o direct_v the_o way_n of_o our_o spiritual_a treadinge_n but_o not_o all_o c._n this_o exception_n be_v add_v to_o the_o end_n everye_o man_n may_v examine_v himself_o if_o peradventure_o judas_n may_v be_v touch_v with_o affection_n to_o repent_v howbeit_o his_o purpose_n be_v to_o confirm_v and_o stay_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o disciple_n aforehand_o lest_o the_o cruel_a fact_n which_o shall_v afterward_o appear_v shall_v trouble_v they_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v conceyve_v in_o a_o heavenlye_a heart_n endue_v with_o grace_n notwithstanding_o upon_o wise_a consideration_n he_o name_v no_o man_n lest_o he_o shall_v take_v away_o all_o occasion_n of_o repentance_n from_o he_o but_o see_v in_o deed_n he_o be_v past_o all_o hope_n of_o recoverye_n this_o admonition_fw-la serve_v only_o to_o increase_v his_o fault_n but_o it_o profit_v the_o disciple_n very_o much_o because_o thereby_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o better_a know_v unto_o they_o furthermore_o they_o understand_v that_o purity_n be_v not_o a_o common_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bu_n wonderful_a therefore_o be_v the_o méekenesse_n and_o gentleness_n of_o christ_n jesus_n who_o neither_o bewray_v to_o other_o the_o know_a traitor_n nor_o yet_o seclude_v she_o from_o the_o wash_n of_o his_o foot_n nor_o from_o the_o holy_a supper_n nor_o yet_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o holy_a body_n and_o blood_n only_o he_o prick_v his_o wicked_a conscience_n that_o so_o he_o may_v repent_v after_o he_o know_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o his_o treason_n 11._o for_o he_o know_v who_o it_o be_v that_o shall_v betray_v he_o therefore_o say_v he_o you_o be_v not_o all_o clean_a m._n the_o evangelist_n say_v not_o for_o he_o know_v who_o it_o be_v which_o beléeve_v on_o he_o but_o who_o it_o be_v that_o shall_v betray_v he_o therefore_o this_o treason_n by_o which_o judas_n bytray_v his_o lord_n be_v so_o filthy_a and_o unclean_a that_o it_o can_v be_v in_o those_o which_o have_v be_v once_o wash_v he_z which_o be_v once_o wash_v of_o christ_n although_o he_o have_v never_o so_o foul_a foot_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o be_v never_o so_o impure_a as_o to_o betray_v christ_n his_o purifyer_n therefore_o so_o many_o as_o for_o money_n and_o filthy_a gain_n sell_v christ_n in_o the_o church_n whether_o they_o be_v apostle_n or_o apostolical_a whether_o they_o be_v pope_n or_o pontifical_a priest_n they_o be_v not_o of_o that_o number_n which_o have_v be_v once_o wash_v and_o be_v cleanse_v thorough_o but_o be_v whole_o unclean_a with_o judas_n the_o traitor_n a._n concern_v far_o matter_n which_o appertainech_n to_o this_o place_n read_v the_o seventye_a verse_n of_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n go_v before_o 12_o so_o after_o he_o have_v wash_v their_o foot_n and_o receive_v bis_fw-la clothes_n and_o be_v set_v down_o again_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o wot_v you_o what_o i_o have_v do_v to_o you_o m._n the_o ceremony_n which_o christ_n use_v before_o his_o disciple_n have_v be_v to_o small_a purpose_n if_o so_o be_v he_o have_v join_v doctrine_n to_o the_o same_o c._n wherefore_o he_o now_o declare_v to_o what_o end_n he_o wash_v his_o disciple_n foot_n now_o therefore_o he_o show_v a_o reason_n of_o his_o do_v and_o when_o he_o say_v wot_v you_o what_o i_o have_v do_v unto_o you_o m._n he_o ask_v not_o the_o same_o as_o doubtful_a c._n but_o show_v that_o he_o hide_v the_o same_o from_o his_o disciple_n for_o a_o time_n that_o prove_v their_o obedience_n he_o may_v in_o time_n reveal_v that_o unto_o they_o which_o afore_o be_v unméete_a to_o be_v know_v neither_o do_v he_o stay_v till_o they_o demand_v the_o meaning_n of_o his_o deed_n but_o he_o prevent_v they_o himself_o the_o like_a shall_v happen_v unto_o we_o if_o so_o be_v we_o suffer_v he_o to_o lead_v we_o by_o the_o hand_n through_o unknown_a way_n 13._o you_o call_v i_o master_n and_o lord_n and_o you_o say_v well_o for_o so_o be_o i_o m._n the_o lord_n take_v a_o argument_n of_o his_o disciple_n word_n so_o teach_v they_o what_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v that_o they_o can_v deny_v the_o same_o except_o they_o will_v deny_v that_o which_o they_o have_v speak_v before_o they_o have_v always_o in_o their_o mouth_n master_n lord_n lord_n but_o they_o little_o consider_v how_o to_o behave_v themselves_o in_o their_o conversation_n as_o his_o disciple_n according_a to_o those_o
peace_n of_o christ_n be_v benediction_n salvation_n justification_n prosperity_n health_n peace_n of_o conscience_n constancy_n in_o adversity_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n itself_o pacefy_v and_o confirm_v our_o heart_n m._n hereupon_o the_o bestower_n of_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n ●●_o ecay_n 9_o ●●_o be_v call_v the_o prince_n of_o peace_n and_o they_o which_o enjoy_v this_o peace_n bu_n howsoever_o satan_n do_v rage_n and_o the_o world_n stir_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o safety_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o garboil_n m._n of_o this_o peace_n the_o apostle_n speak_v when_o he_o say_v we_o be_v iustefy_v by_o faith_n 4.7_o rom_n 5.1_o phil_n 4.7_o have_v peace_n with_o god_n through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n a._n and_o in_o another_o place_n the_o peace_n of_o god_n which_o pass_v all_o understanding_n keep_v your_o heart_n and_o mind_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n this_o peace_n the_o world_n can_v neither_o give_v nor_o take_v away_o let_v not_o your_o heart_n be_v greeve_v c._n again_o he_o seek_v to_o take_v from_o they_o that_o grief_n which_o his_o disciple_n have_v conceyve_v of_o his_o departure_n m._n for_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v greeve_v or_o fear_v which_o be_v consecrate_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o guard_v and_o protect_v by_o the_o high_a again_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o hear●_n cause_v god_n cause_n often_o time_n to_o be_v forsake_v whereas_o a_o stout_a and_o invincible_a mind_n i●_n apt_a for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o constant_o serve_v he_o 28._o you_o have_v hear_v how_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o i_o go_v away_o and_o come_v again_o unto_o you_o if_o you_o love_v i_o you_o will_v very_o rejoice_v because_o i_o say_v i_o go_v unto_o the_o father_n for_o the_o father_n be_v great_a than_o i_o c._n he_o deny_v that_o they_o have_v any_o cause_n to_o fear_n because_o they_o want_v only_o his_o corporal_a presence_n have_v nevertheless_o his_o true_a presence_n by_o the_o spirit_n bu_n as_o if_o christ_n shall_v have_v say_v you_o understande_v that_o i_o go_v away_o and_o why_o i_o go_v away_o namely_o for_o your_o salvation_n and_o that_o by_o my_o death_n and_o departure_n i_o will_v neither_o forsake_v you_o nor_o neglect_v you_o for_o i_o will_v come_v unto_o you_o by_o my_o resurrection_n show_v myself_o unto_o you_o a_o live_v again_o and_o although_o then_o i_o shall_v be_v with_o you_o only_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o day_n and_o shall_v straight_o after_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n yet_o notwithstanding_o i_o will_v send_v from_o thence_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o who_o i_o will_v abide_v even_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o you_o so_o that_o you_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o fear_v that_o i_o will_v leave_v you_o comfortelesse_a c._n with_o this_o kind_n of_o presence_n let_v we_o learn_v to_o hold_n ourselves_o content_v and_o let_v we_o not_o follow_v the_o flesh_n which_o always_o ty_v god_n to_o her_o external_a imagination_n if_o you_o love_v i_o you_o will_v very_o rejoice_v r._n carnal_a love_n take_v it_o very_o gréevouslye_o that_o a_o love_a friend_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o but_o spiritual_a love_n be_v otherwise_o affect_v c._n no_o doubt_v the_o disciple_n love_v christ_n but_o otherwise_o than_o become_v they_o for_o they_o be_v somewhat_o carnal_a insomuch_o that_o they_o can_v not_o abide_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v take_v from_o they_o whereas_o if_o they_o have_v love_v he_o spiritual_o they_o will_v have_v desire_v nothing_o more_o than_o his_o return_n to_o the_o father_n for_o the_o father_n be_v great_a than_o j._n c._n this_o place_n have_v be_v diverselye_o wrest_v the_o arian_n to_o prove_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o certain_a secondary_a god_n object_v that_o he_o be_v less_o than_o the_o father_n the_o ancient_a father_n to_o cut_v of_o all_o occasion_n of_o this_o cavil_n say_v that_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o human_a nature_n but_o as_o the_o arian_n wicked_o abuse_v this_o testimony_n even_o so_o the_o answer_n and_o solution_n of_o the_o father_n be_v neither_o true_a nor_o agree_v to_o the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n for_o christ_n speak_v here_o neither_o of_o his_o humane_a nature_n nor_o yet_o of_o his_o eternal_a devinytie_n but_o according_a to_o our_o weak_a capascity_n he_o make_v himself_o a_o mean_a between_o we_o and_o god_n and_o because_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o reach_v unto_o the_o hight_v of_o god_n christ_n descend_v unto_o we_o that_o he_o may_v lift_v we_o up_o unto_o the_o same_o you_o shall_v rejoice_v say_v he_o for_o that_o i_o return_v to_o the_o father_n because_o this_o be_v the_o last_o mark_n where_o unto_o you_o ought_v to_o tend_v he_o do_v not_o show_v in_o those_o word_n what_o he_o differ_v from_o the_o fathere_n but_o wherefore_o he_o descend_v unto_o we_o namely_o to_o unite_v we_o unto_o god_n until_o we_o be_v come_v unto_o this_o we_o stand_v as_o it_o werein_o a_o race_n we_o also_o imagine_v but_o a_o half_a and_o tear_a christ_n except_o he_o lead_v we_o unto_o god_n like_o unto_o this_o be_v that_o place_n of_o paul_n where_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n have_v deliver_v up_o his_o kingdom_n to_o god_n the_o father_n that_o god_n may_v be_v all_o in_o all_o christ_n very_o reign_v not_o only_o in_o humane_a nature_n but_o also_o as_o he_o be_v manifest_v god_n in_o the_o flesh_n how_o then_o shall_v he_o leave_v his_o kingdom_n sure_o thus_o because_o the_o divinitye_n which_o we_o may_v now_o behold_v only_o in_o the_o face_n of_o christ_n shall_v then_o be_v open_o see_v in_o itself_o this_o be_v only_o the_o difference_n for_o that_o paul_n in_o that_o place_n describe_v the_o last_o perfection_n of_o the_o divine_a glory_n and_o brightness_n who_o beam_n begin_v to_o shine_v so_o soon_o as_o christ_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n but_o to_o the_o end_n this_o mistress_n may_v more_o evident_o appear_v we_o must_v speak_v yet_o more_o gross_o christ_n compare_v not_o here_o his_o father_n divinity_n with_o his_o neither_o do_v he_o compare_v his_o human_a nature_n with_o the_o divine_a escence_n of_o the_o father_n but_o rather_o the_o present_a state_n with_o the_o heavenlye_a glory_n into_o the_o which_o he_o be_v short_o after_o to_o be_v receyvid_a as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v you_o desire_v to_o have_v i_o still_o in_o the_o world_n but_o it_o be_v better_a for_o i_o that_o i_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n b._n for_o his_o purpose_n be_v to_o give_v they_o to_o understande_v that_o god_n the_o father_n be_v infinite_o great_a than_o he_o that_o be_v that_o he_o shall_v enjoy_v with_o he_o the_o most_o excellent_a felycity_n where_o as_o he_o have_v live_v here_o in_o misery_n and_o calamitye_n r._n for_o by_o death_n he_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o father_n c._n therefore_o let_v we_o learn_v so_o to_o behold_v christ_n aba●ed_v in_o the_o flesh_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v we_o to_o the_o well_o of_o bless_a immortality_n for_o he_o be_v not_o make_v our_o captain_n and_o guide_n to_o lead_v we_o only_o to_o the_o spear_n of_o the_o moon_n or_o son_n but_o to_o make_v we_o one_o with_o god_n the_o father_n 29._o and_o now_o have_v i_o show_v you_o before_o it_o come_v that_o when_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v you_o may_v believe_v m._n what_o say_v he_o all_o those_o thing_n very_o which_o he_o have_v speak_v concern_v the_o comforter_n of_o the_o true_a felicity_n which_o they_o shall_v have_v by_o he_o and_o of_o the_o unspeakable_a power_n by_o which_o they_o shall_v do_v great_a work_n than_o the_o lord_n himself_o have_v do_v c._n it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o disciple_n shall_v be_v oftetnimes_o admonish_v concern_v this_o matter_n because_o it_o be_v a_o mystery_n far_o surmount_v the_o capacity_n of_o man_n and_o he_o say_v that_o he_o foreshow_v what_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o when_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v they_o may_v believe_v for_o this_o be_v a_o profitable_a confirmation_n of_o their_o faith_n when_o they_o shall_v call_v to_o mind_v the_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n and_o shall_v see_v that_o with_o their_o eye_n fulfil_v which_o they_o have_v hear_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n before_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v r._n i_o know_v that_o you_o do_v not_o now_o enjoy_v these_o thing_n of_o the_o which_o i_o speak_v b._n notwithstanding_o i_o think_v good_a to_o foreshewe_v you_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o shall_v happen_v unto_o you_o after_o my_o departure_n and_o which_o shall_v profit_v you_o much_o more_o than_o my_o carnal_a presence_n have_v do_v that_o when_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v you_o may_v the_o more_o firm_o believe_v that_o i_o be_o christ_n the_o savioure_n of_o the_o world_n c._n
corrupt_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o other_o by_o sleuth_n choke_v &_o suppress_v the_o same_o and_o othersom_a by_o malice_n by_o these_o word_n he_o seek_v to_o make_v man_n careful_a when_o he_o pronounce_v that_o all_o they_o shall_v be_v cut_v from_o the_o vine_n which_o be_v unfruitefull_a branch_n bu_n for_o as_o the_o husband_n man_n do_v prune_n and_o cut_v of_o the_o unfruitful_a branch_n even_o so_o the_o heavenlye_a father_n do_v cut_v of_o and_o cast_v away_o unfruitefull_a man_n and_o the_o fruit_n or_o cluster_n of_o grape_n hang_v upon_o the_o bough_n or_o branch_n be_v the_o work_n of_o faith_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o of_o charity_n evenas_fw-la the_o prophet_n esay_n and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n do_v plain_o expound_v the_o same_o 9_z esay_n 5_o 2_z gala_n 5_o 22_o ephe_n 5_o 9_z c._n but_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v if_o he_o can_v want_v fruit_n which_o be_v ingraft_v in_o christ_n we_o answer_v many_o be_v think_v to_o be_v in_o the_o vine_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n which_o in_o very_a deed_n have_v no_o root_n at_o all_o in_o the_o same_o euenso_fw-la in_o the_o prophet_n the_o lord_n call_v his_o people_n of_o israel_n his_o vine_n which_o by_o external_a profession_n have_v the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n b._n therefore_o even_o as_o tare_n be_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o corrupt_a fish_n in_o the_o net_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o man_n want_v the_o wedding_n garment_n in_o the_o marriage_n of_o christ_n evenso_fw-la there_o be_v some_o but_o in_o name_n only_o which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o christ_n have_v only_o a_o out_o ward_n show_v and_o not_o a_o true_a faith_n wherefore_o at_o the_o length_n these_o be_v cut_v of_o and_o be_v cast_v into_o hell_n fire_n as_o unfruitefull_a and_o unprofitable_a branch_n r._n moreover_o this_o sentence_n answer_v that_o curiosity_n of_o the_o flesh_n which_o be_v wont_a unreverent_o to_o reason_n of_o predestination_n and_o according_a to_o the_o disposition_n thereof_o together_o that_o none_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v elect_v to_o everlasting_a life_n can_v be_v damn_a although_o he_o live_v never_o so_o wicked_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n that_o none_o of_o they_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v appoint_v to_o eternal_a fire_n can_v be_v save_v yea_o though_o he_o live_v never_o so_o well_o and_o that_o therefore_o he_o will_v live_v at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n for_o say_v he_o how_o careful_o soever_o i_o work_v the_o lord_n decree_n can_v be_v alter_v to_o this_o christ_n here_o answer_v say_v every_o branch_n that_o bear_v not_o fruit_n in_o i_o he_o will_v take_v away_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v what_o have_v thou_o to_o do_v with_o the_o secret_a predestination_n of_o god_n see_v thou_o to_o this_o that_o thou_o abide_v in_o i_o and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n the_o rest_n be_v to_o be_v commit_v to_o the_o dispensation_n and_o wisdom_n of_o god_n for_o although_o thou_o seem_v to_o be_v predestinate_a to_o everlasting_a salvation_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o bring_v not_o forth_o fruit_n thou_o shall_v be_v cast_v into_o the_o fire_n as_o be_v common_o unfruitful_a branch_n it_o be_v wrighten_a of_o saul_n that_o he_o be_v elect_v to_o be_v in_o the_o lord_n vineyard_n and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o good_a man_n and_o that_o a_o better_a than_o he_o be_v not_o find_v in_o israel_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o be_v reject_v evenas_a the_o lord_n say_v to_o samuel_n i6_n i_o king_z i6_n how_o long_o will_v thou_o mourn_v for_o saul_n see_v i_o have_v cast_v he_o away_o from_o reign_v over_o israel_n in_o like_o manner_n the_o lord_n say_v 24_o jer_z 2d_o 24_o if_o so_o be_v jeconias_n the_o son_n of_o joachim_n be_v the_o signit_a on_o my_o right_a hand_n i_o will_v pull_v he_o of_o 7_z esay_n 5_o 7_z the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n also_o be_v a_o choose_a people_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v reject_v and_o the_o apostle_n say_v thou_o which_o stand_v steadfast_a in_o faith_n be_v not_o high_a mind_v but_o fear_n for_o see_v that_o god_n spare_v not_o the_o natural_a branch_n take_v heed_n lest_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v 2i_fw-la rom_n xi_o 2i_fw-la that_o he_o spare_v not_o thou_o a._n the_o which_o thing_n be_v not_o therefore_o speak_v that_o the_o faithful_a may_v take_v occasion_n to_o doubt_n of_o their_o salvation_n but_o to_o the_o end_n carnal_a security_n and_o sloth_n may_v be_v take_v away_o from_o man_n r._n for_o it_o be_v most_o sertaine_a that_o god_n decree_n can_v not_o be_v alter_v by_o any_o man_n for_o the_o gift_n &_o call_v of_o god_n be_v without_o repentance_n because_o he_o be_v not_o as_o a_o man_n which_o repent_v he_o and_o call_v back_o 29_o rom_n xi_o 29_o the_o sentence_n which_o he_o have_v once_o decree_v therefore_o this_o stand_v as_o a_o firm_a decree_n that_o whosoever_o god_n have_v choose_v before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n 29_o god_n election_n abide_v firm_a joh_n i0_n 29_o he_o can_v perish_v for_o no_o man_n take_v the_o sheep_n out_o of_o this_o shephéerds_n hand_n &_o that_o who_o soever_o he_o have_v reject_v he_o can_v be_v save_v although_o he_o do_v all_o the_o work_n of_o sayncte_v so_o irretractable_a and_o unmoovable_a be_v the_o sentence_n of_o god_n fear_v therefore_o and_o have_v respect_n to_o the_o only_a hand_n of_o he_o that_o choose_v that_o thou_o may_v enjoy_v salvation_n through_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n and_o every_o branch_n that_o bear_v fruit_n c._n by_o these_o word_n he_o teach_v that_o the_o faithful_a lest_o they_o shall_v degenerate_v have_v need_n of_o daily_a purge_n &_o proin_v &_o that_o they_o can_v bring_v forth_o no_o good_a thing_n without_o god_n set_v to_o his_o hand_n for_o it_o will_v not_o suffice_v that_o we_o be_v once_o make_v the_o child_n of_o adoption_n except_o god_n do_v profit_n the_o course_n of_o grace_n in_o us._n he_o speak_v here_o of_o purgation_n because_o our_o flesh_n abound_v with_o superfluous_a and_o hurtful_a vice_n in_o bring_v forth_o of_o the_o which_o it_o be_v to_o fruitful_a increase_v and_o bud_v forth_o without_o end_n except_o we_o be_v purge_v and_o proyn_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n r._n the_o proyn_v of_o the_o tree_n be_v not_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o same_o but_o that_o it_o may_v bring_v forth_o more_o fruit_n for_o otherwise_o the_o same_o grow_v to_o high_a and_o spread_v forth_o his_o branch_n without_o prune_v &_o cleanse_v will_v overgrow_v wyther_o and_o bear_v no_o fruit_n physician_n purgation_n of_o the_o flesh_n by_o the_o heavenly_a physician_n euenso_fw-la the_o flesh_n in_o the_o most_o holy_a if_o it_o may_v have_v liberty_n to_o do_v what_o it_o lu_v god_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a shall_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o the_o divine_a throne_n of_o his_o majesty_n hear_v what_o the_o king_n of_o babel_n say_v i_o will_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n i_o will_v be_v like_a to_o the_o most_o high_a i3_n esai_n 14_o i3_n the_o king_n of_o tyre_n also_o speak_v the_o like_a i_o be_o god_n and_o i_o sit_v in_o god_n seat_n ij_o eze._n 28._o ij_o how_o great_o do_v the_o flesh_n swell_v be_v stuff_v with_o benefit_n and_o never_o proyn_v with_o the_o cross_n therefore_o the_o father_n which_o be_v the_o husbandman_n purge_v the_o branch_n that_o be_v to_o say_v beat_v down_o and_o humble_v the_o faithful_a man_n with_o the_o cross_n renu_v his_o heart_n wash_v the_o foot_n of_o his_o affection_n &_o mortify_v the_o relic_n of_o the_o flesh_n therefore_o we_o must_v consider_v in_o this_o similitude_n of_o proyn_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o cross_n for_o the_o lord_n afflict_v not_o to_o destroy_v but_o to_o save_v even_o as_o the_o husbandman_n proyn_v the_o branch_n not_o to_o cut_v of_o all_o but_o to_o purge_v and_o cleanse_v the_o same_o that_o it_o may_v bring_v forth_o fruit_n more_o plentiful_o bu_n therefore_o these_o word_n agree_v with_o this_o sentence_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o that_o be_v wash_v need_v not_o to_o save_v to_o wash_v his_o foot_n obligatory_n joh._n i3_n obligatory_n but_o be_v clean_o every_o whit_n for_o the_o saint_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v holy_a have_v need_n of_o far_a and_o more_o ample_a sanctification_n c._n therefore_o when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o vine_n be_v purge_v that_o they_o may_v bring_v forth_o more_o fruit_n he_o show_v how_o great_o the_o godly_a aught_o to_o go_v frreward_a and_o to_o profit_v in_o all_o godliness_n 3._o now_o be_v you_o clean_o through_o the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v unto_o you_o m._n he_o have_v hitherto_o speak_v of_o himself_o the_o vine_n and_o of_o his_o father_n the_o husbandman_n and_o now_o consequentlye_o he_o expound_v the_o allegorye_n and_o speak_v
the_o apostle_n be_v choose_v that_o therewithal_o he_o join_v that_o first_o election_n by_o which_o they_o be_v graft_v into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o these_o word_n he_o general_o comprehend_v all_o that_o dignity_n whereunto_o he_o have_v advance_v they_o but_o yet_o nevertheless_o we_o confess_v that_o ge_fw-mi speak_v special_o of_o the_o apostleship_n for_o the_o purpose_n christ_n be_v to_o stir_v up_o his_o apostle_n faithful_o and_o constantlye_o to_o discharge_v their_o office_n he_o take_v occasion_n of_o exhortation_n from_o that_o free_a favour_n into_o the_o which_o he_o receive_v they_o for_o the_o more_o we_o be_v bind_v unto_o the_o lord_n the_o more_o fervent_a we_o ought_v to_o be_v to_o do_v those_o duty_n which_o he_o require_v at_o our_o hand_n otherwise_o we_o can_v escape_v the_o vice_n of_o wicked_a ingratitude_n whereby_o there_o be_v nothing_o which_o ought_v to_o move_v we_o more_o to_o live_v a_o holy_a and_o a_o godly_a life_n then_o when_o we_o know_v that_o we_o have_v all_o thing_n from_o god_n and_o nothing_o of_o ourselves_o and_o that_o as_o well_o the_o begin_n of_o our_o salvation_n as_o all_o the_o part_n that_o come_v of_o the_o same_o do_v flow_v from_o his_o free_a grace_n and_o mercy_n a._n for_o everye_o good_a gift_n and_o everye_o perfect_v gift_n be_v from_o above_o come_v down_o from_o the_o father_n of_o light_v c._n and_o how_o true_a this_o scentence_n of_o christ_n be_v it_o may_v hereby_o apeeare_v 17_o jam._n i._n 17_o that_o christ_n choose_v they_o to_o be_v his_o apostle_n which_o may_v seem_v of_o all_o other_o to_o be_v most_o foolish_a howbeit_o in_o their_o person_n he_o will_v have_v a_o perpetual_a monument_n of_o his_o grace_n to_o be_v see_v 2_z ●_o cor_fw-la 4_o 2_z for_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v what_o man_n shall_v be_v find_v meet_a to_o go_v on_o that_o message_n by_o which_o god_n reconcile_v mankind_n unto_o himself_o and_o what_o man_n be_v he_o which_o can_v bear_v the_o person_n of_o god_n therefore_o it_o be_v only_a christ_n which_o by_o his_o election_n make_v we_o meet_v for_o this_o cause_n paul_n bring_v his_o apostleship_n from_o grace_n 5._o rom._n ay_o 5._o by_o who_o say_v he_o we_o have_v receyve_v grace_n and_o the_o office_n of_o the_o apostleship_n also_o he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v choose_v to_o be_v a_o apostle_n 15_z gala_n ay_o 15_z even_o from_o his_o mother_n womb_n and_o because_o we_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n they_o which_o seem_v most_o to_o excel_v shall_v be_v unméete_a for_o the_o lest_o part_n of_o their_o call_n until_o they_o be_v choose_v so_o that_o the_o more_o he_o be_v advance_v to_o honour_n the_o more_o let_v he_o know_v he_o be_v bind_v unto_o god_n b._n and_o this_o be_v a_o manifest_a place_n against_o such_o as_o be_v enemy_n unto_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 7_z i._o cor_n 4_o 7_z and_o do_v maintain_v merit_n for_o what_o have_v thou_o say_v the_o apostle_n which_o thou_o have_v not_o receyve_v and_o ordain_v you_o to_o go_v c._n election_n be_v secret_a untyll_o it_o be_v manifest_v in_o deed_n when_o a_o man_n be_v enjoin_v a_o office_n to_o the_o which_o he_o be_v ordain_v before_o apostleship_n election_n to_o apostleship_n even_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n after_o he_o have_v say_v that_o he_o be_v choose_v from_o his_o mother_n womb_n straight_o after_o add_v i5_n gala_n i_o i5_n that_o he_o be_v make_v a_o apostle_n when_o it_o seem_v so_o good_a unto_o the_o lord_n so_o the_o lord_n testify_v that_o jeremy_n be_v know_v unto_o he_o before_o he_o be_v in_o his_o mother_n womb_n who_o notwithstanding_o in_o his_o time_n he_o call_v to_o the_o prophetical_a office_n notwithstanding_o it_o may_v be_v that_o some_o man_n may_v come_v right_o prepare_v for_o the_o office_n of_o teach_v and_o it_o be_v already_o ordain_v in_o the_o church_n that_o no_o man_n be_v call_v but_o he_o which_o be_v endue_v with_o necessary_a gift_n 7_z i_o tim_n 3_o 2_z titus_z i_z 7_z a._n even_o as_o we_o may_v see_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o paul_n require_v to_o be_v in_o a_o bishop_n but_o in_o that_o christ_n make_v himself_o the_o author_n of_o boath_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o father_n work_v not_o but_o by_o he_o and_o he_o work_v with_o the_o father_n therefore_o as_o well_o the_o election_n as_o the_o ordination_n be_v common_a to_o boath_n to_o go_v and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n c._n now_o he_o show_v wherefore_o he_o make_v mention_v of_o his_o grace_n name_o that_o he_o may_v make_v they_o more_o cheerful_a unto_o their_o work_n the_o dignity_n of_o the_o apostleship_n be_v not_o a_o idle_a office_n &_o therefore_o it_o behove_v they_o to_o fight_v and_o strive_v with_o great_a perrille_n christ_n therefore_o prick_v they_o forward_o lest_o they_o shall_v shun_v labour_n perrille_n and_o trouble_n m._n he_o say_v not_o i_o have_v ordain_v you_o to_o be_v prince_n and_o king_n and_o to_o have_v domination_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o to_o go_v and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n neither_o do_v he_o make_v any_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o other_o but_o make_v all_o subject_n unto_o his_o call_n the_o byshoppe_n of_o rome_n have_v ordain_v such_o in_o the_o church_n at_o this_o day_n as_o go_v not_o to_o bring_v fruit_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o gather_v tribute_n and_o tax_n and_o to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o burden_n to_o the_o earth_n and_o consumer_n of_o fruit_n these_o be_v tree_n ordain_v not_o to_o bear_v but_o to_o devour_v fruit_n and_o this_o ought_v not_o to_o seem_v strange_a to_o any_o man_n for_o they_o be_v not_o branch_n of_o the_o true_a vine_n but_o of_o the_o wild_a vine_n c._n furthermore_o christ_n reason_v here_o of_o the_o effect_n when_o he_o say_v to_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n mean_v hereby_o that_o their_o labour_n shall_v not_o be_v vain_a and_o unprofitable_a if_o so_o be_v they_o be_v ready_a and_o willing_a to_o obey_v for_o he_o do_v not_o here_o only_o prescribe_v what_o their_o vocation_n do_v require_v but_o also_o lest_o they_o shall_v be_v weary_a and_o can_v he_o promise_v unto_o they_o prosperous_a success_n for_o it_o can_v be_v that_o any_o man_n shall_v use_v pain_n and_o diligence_n at_o his_o work_n except_o he_o hope_v that_o his_o labour_n will_v be_v profitable_a it_o can_v not_o be_v utter_v how_o necessary_a this_o consolation_n be_v against_o so_o many_o temtation_n which_o daily_o happen_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n therefore_o so_o oftentimes_o as_o they_o seem_v to_o lose_v their_o labour_n let_v they_o remember_v this_o that_o christ_n will_v at_o the_o leangth_n bring_v to_o pass_v that_o their_o labour_n shall_v not_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o then_o special_o this_o promise_n take_v place_n when_o there_o appear_v no_o fruit_n and_o that_o your_o fruit_n shall_v remain_v c._n here_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v why_o christ_n say_v that_o this_o fruit_n shall_v be_v perpetual_a because_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n wyn_v fowl_n unto_o christ_n that_o they_o may_v inherit_v everlasting_a life_n this_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o perpetuitye_n of_o the_o fruit_n but_o this_o sentence_n may_v be_v far_o extend_v as_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v stand_v unto_o thou_fw-mi end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o labour_n of_o the_o apostle_n at_o this_o day_n also_o do_v fructefye_v and_o the_o preach_n of_o minister_n belong_v not_o unto_o one_o age_n but_o the_o church_n shall_v increase_v insomuche_o that_o after_o their_o death_n new_a profit_n shall_v come_v a._n whereupon_o peter_n speak_v thus_o i_o will_v ever_o geve_v my_o diligence_n that_o you_o may_v have_v wherewith_o to_o stir_v uppe_o the_o remembrance_n of_o these_o thing_n after_o my_o departure_n 15_z 2._o pet._n ay_o 15_z c._n when_o he_o call_v it_o their_o fruit_n he_o speak_v as_o though_o it_o be_v get_v by_o their_o industrye_n 7_z i_o cor._n 3_o 7_z whereas_o notwithstanding_o paul_n say_v that_o they_o which_o plant_n and_o they_o which_o water_n be_v nothing_o and_o in_o deed_n the_o creation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v such_o a_o excellent_a work_n that_o the_o glory_n thereof_o ought_v not_o to_o he_o ascribe_v unto_o man_n but_o because_o the_o lord_n declare_v his_o power_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o man_n lest_o they_o shall_v labour_v in_o vain_a he_o be_v wont_a also_o to_o ascribe_v that_o unto_o they_o which_o be_v proper_a unto_o himself_o that_o whatsoever_o you_o ask_v in_o my_o name_n m._n this_o serve_v great_o to_o the_o comfort_v of_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o disciple_n when_o they_o know_v that_o they_o be_v not_o only_o call_v of_o christ_n to_o go_v and_o to_o bring_v fruit_n but_o also_o in_o
they_o do_v put_v the_o sum_n of_o their_o doctrine_n in_o write_n to_o this_o doctrine_n whosoever_o think_v that_o somewhat_o must_v be_v add_v as_o though_o the_o same_o be_v lame_a and_o unperfect_a he_o do_v not_o only_o accuse_v the_o apostel_n of_o fallse_a deal_n but_o also_o it_o be_v blasphemuse_v against_o the_o spirit_n if_o so_o be_v the_o doctrine_n the_o which_o they_o have_v put_v in_o writing_n come_v as_o yet_o from_o young_a instruct_v scholar_n and_o novice_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o a_o vain_a and_o superfluose_fw-la addition_n but_o now_o see_v their_o write_n be_v as_o it_o be_v prepetunall_n to_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v promise_v and_o perform_v unto_o they_o their_o can_v nothing_o be_v add_v unto_o the_o same_o without_o great_a injury_n do_v unto_o the_o spirit_n but_o when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o matter_n itself_o the_o papist_n be_v very_o vain_a &_o ridiculous_a for_o they_o define_v and_o afirme_v that_o those_o secret_n with_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o able_a to_o conceive_v and_o comprehend_v be_v but_o childish_a and_o trifle_a joy_n than_o the_o which_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o more_o vain_a and_o foolish_a they_o will_v have_v forsooth_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o descend_v from_o heaven_n to_o teach_v the_o apostle_n how_o to_o consecrate_v their_o chalice_n with_o their_o altar_n how_o to_o baptize_v bell_n and_o to_o make_v holy_a water_n and_o how_o to_o selebrat_v mass_n but_o how_o do_v fool_n and_o child_n learn_v which_o have_v all_o these_o thing_n at_o their_o finger_n end_n very_o perfect_v m_o these_o be_v jolly_a fellow_n which_o place_n the_o instruction_n and_o revelation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o church_n after_o the_o gospel_n as_o though_o those_o thing_n alone_o which_o christ_n teach_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o which_o the_o disciple_n can_v conceive_v pertain_v to_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v after_o the_o departure_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o apostle_n can_v not_o conceyve_v and_o carry_v before_o they_o have_v receyve_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v these_o notable_a and_o erce_a lend_v ceremony_n of_o day_n of_o meal_n of_o garment_n and_o such_o like_a b._n for_o they_o contend_v &_o affirm_v that_o these_o many_o thing_n which_o christ_n say_v his_o apostle_n can_v not_o bear_v as_o yet_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v those_o ceremony_n which_o have_v creep_v into_o the_o church_n and_o which_o be_v very_o gainful_a unto_o they_o but_o what_o can_v be_v more_o foolishlye_a speak_v r._n for_o see_v those_o ceremony_n do_v savour_n more_o of_o the_o flesh_n than_o they_o do_v of_o the_o spirit_n how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v reveal_v by_o the_o spirit_n when_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o flesh_n be_v contrary_a one_o to_o the_o other_o let_v we_o therefore_o except_o we_o will_v be_v unthankful_a unto_o god_n stay_n ourselves_o and_o be_v content_v with_o that_o doctrine_n of_o the_o which_o the_o apostle_n be_v author_n as_o the_o scripture_n do_v testify_v see_v the_o full_a perfection_n of_o heavenlye_a wisdom_n be_v contain_v in_o they_o which_o may_v make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a beyond_o the_o same_o we_o think_v it_o not_o meet_v for_o any_o man_n to_o pass_v for_o in_o this_o consist_v high_a breadth_n and_o depth_n to_o know_v the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o we_o in_o christ_n 28_o ephe_n 3_o 28_o this_o knowledge_n be_v above_o all_o other_o knoweledg_n as_o say_v the_o apostle_n paul_n and_o when_o he_o say_v that_o all_o the_o treasur_n of_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n be_v hide_v in_o christ_n i_o gala._n 3_o i_o he_o do_v not_o immagin_v any_o unknowen_a christ_n but_o such_o a_o one_o as_o by_o his_o preach_n he_o have_v lively_o depaint_v that_o we_o may_v behold_v he_o evenas_a it_o be_v before_o our_o eye_n crucify_v but_o lest_o any_o doubt_n or_o ambiguity_n shall_v remain_v christ_n himself_o afterward_o expound_v his_o own_o word_n show_v what_o thing_n those_o be_v which_o the_o apostle_n can_v not_o then_o bear_v and_o with_o all_o declare_v what_o the_o office_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v say_v he_o shall_v not_o speak_v of_o himself_o but_o whatsoever_o he_o shall_v hear_v c._n many_o restrain_v this_o unto_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophesy_n a._n for_o there_o want_v not_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n 28_o act_n xi_o 28_o some_o which_o forshew_v thing_n to_o come_v as_o we_o may_v read_v of_o agabus_n x●_n acts._n xxi_o x●_n who_o prophesy_v of_o the_o famine_n to_o come_v in_o the_o emperor_n claudius_n day_n and_o what_o shall_v happen_v to_o paul_n at_o jerusalem_n he_o forshew_v to_o the_o brother_n also_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n prophesy_v of_o many_o thing_n concern_v antichrist_n and_o his_o member_n xxix_o act_n xx_o xxix_o all_o which_o thing_n be_v most_o true_a 4_z i_o tim._n 4_o i_z 2_z tim._n 3_o 19_o 2._o pet_n 2._o i_o jude._n i_o 4_z c._n howbeit_o christ_n in_o this_o place_n seem_v rather_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o state_n of_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n which_o the_o apostle_n see_v straight_o after_o his_o resurrection_n but_o yet_o can_v not_o by_o any_o mean_n comprehend_v the_o same_o the_o treasure_n of_o this_o secret_a wisdom_n paul_n expound_v in_o his_o first_o chapter_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesyans_n when_o christ_n say_v that_o the_o spirit_n shall_v not_o speak_v of_o himself_o he_o confyrm_v that_o which_o go_v before_o he_o shall_v lead_v you_o into_o all_o truth_n he_o mean_v therefore_o that_o whatsoever_o the_o spirit_n bring_v procee_v from_o god_n notwithstanding_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v nothing_o deminish_v by_o these_o word_n as_o though_o either_o he_o be_v not_o god_n or_o else_o wear_v inferioure_fw-fr to_o the_o father_n but_o they_o be_v speak_v to_o the_o capascity_n of_o our_o mind_n for_o because_o of_o the_o veil_n which_o be_v before_o our_o eye_n we_o do_v not_o sufficient_o perceyve_v with_o how_o great_a reverence_n we_o ought_v to_o receyve_v those_o thing_n which_o the_o spirit_n reveal_v unto_o we_o therefore_o mention_v of_o the_o divinity_n be_v make_v even_o as_o in_o another_o place_n it_o be_v call_v the_o earnest_n by_o which_o god_n have_v establish_v our_o salvation_n and_o the_o seal_n i3_n ephe._n i._n i3_n by_o which_o he_o seal_v the_o sertaynty_a of_o the_o same_o unto_o us._n to_o conclude_v the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o teach_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n 17._o john_n 17._o but_o that_o it_o come_v out_o of_o the_o heavenly_a sanctuary_n evenas_a christ_n often_o time_n testify_v of_o his_o doctrine_n 14._o he_o shall_v glorify_v i_o for_o he_o shall_v receive_v of_o i_o and_o shall_v show_v unto_o you_o c._n now_o christ_n show_v that_o there_o shall_v not_o come_v a_o spirit_n which_o shall_v erect_v and_o set_v up_o a_o new_a kingdom_n but_o which_o shall_v rather_o establish_v the_o glory_n give_v to_o he_o of_o the_o father_n m._n notwithstanding_o he_o speak_v not_o this_o for_o the_o affection_n of_o his_o own_o glory_n but_o upon_o a_o desyer_n to_o pacify_v and_o quiet_v the_o mind_n of_o his_o discipl_n lest_o they_o shall_v think_v that_o they_o shall_v so_o receive_v another_o comforter_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v separate_v &_o divide_v from_o he_o as_o though_o by_o they_o he_o shall_v deal_v in_o another_o man_n cause_n and_o not_o in_o his_o own_o the_o which_o they_o take_v very_o grevouslye_o for_o the_o love_n which_o they_o bear_v unto_o he_o c._n many_o dream_n that_o christ_n have_v only_o teach_v his_o disciple_n the_o first_o principle_n and_o afterwards_o deliver_v unto_o they_o more_o profound_a matter_n thus_o they_o make_v no_o more_o account_v of_o the_o gospel_n than_o they_o do_v of_o the_o law_n the_o which_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v the_o schoolmaster_n of_o the_o jew_n unto_o christ_n after_o this_o error_n there_o follow_v a_o other_o no_o less_o intolerable_a as_o that_o christ_n have_v now_o take_v his_o leave_n 24_o gala._n 3_o 24_o and_o be_v enter_v into_o his_o kingdom_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v and_o have_v appoint_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v in_o his_o place_n from_o this_o ground_n the_o sacrilege_n of_o popery_n and_o of_o mahometism_n have_v come_v for_o although_o these_o antichristes_n be_v much_o unlyke_a one_o to_o the_o other_o in_o many_o thing_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o have_v all_o one_o beginning_n for_o they_o say_v that_o by_o the_o gospel_n we_o be_v enter_v into_o the_o right_a faith_n but_o yet_o that_o we_o must_v seek_v for_o the_o perfection_n of_o doctrne_n from_o another_o as_o though_o christ_n
three_o day_n he_o will_v raise_v we_o up_o and_o we_o shall_v live_v in_o his_o sight_n c._n therefore_o because_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n have_v always_o include_v in_o it_o victory_n christ_n do_v very_o apt_o compare_v the_o sorrow_n which_o be_v conceive_v thereby_o to_o the_o sorrow_n of_o a_o woman_n traveilinge_v with_o child_n 2_o rom._n ●_o 2_o which_o sorrow_n be_v turn_v to_o joy_n by_o the_o reward_n of_o a_o child_n but_o because_o this_o be_v the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o all_o creature_n to_o travail_v and_o groan_n untyll_o the_o last_o day_n of_o redemption_n let_v we_o know_v that_o we_o must_v sigh_v and_o groan_n also_o untyll_o such_o time_n as_o we_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o the_o continual_a misery_n of_o this_o present_a life_n do_v plain_o see_v the_o fruit_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o the_o faithful_a be_v like_a unto_o a_o woman_n which_o have_v bring_v forth_o a_o child_n in_o that_o they_o be_v bear_v again_o in_o christ_n and_o be_v already_o enter_v into_o the_o celestial_a kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o everlasting_a life_n but_o they_o be_v like_a unto_o great_a belly_a and_o traveil_v woman_n in_o that_o as_o yet_o they_o be_v captive_n in_o the_o prison_n of_o the_o flesh_n wait_v for_o that_o happy_a state_n which_o lie_v hide_v from_o their_o eye_n when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o will_v see_v his_o disciple_n again_o he_o mean_v when_o he_o shall_v return_v to_o visit_v they_o with_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o sight_n of_o he_o for_o ever_o r._n for_o christ_n see_v we_o when_o he_o send_v his_o holy_a spirit_n by_o which_o as_o by_o a_o seal_n he_o seal_v and_o confirm_v our_o heart_n that_o we_o may_v have_v the_o joy_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o ever_o even_o as_o he_o add_v say_v and_o your_o joy_n shall_v no_o man_n take_v from_o you_o this_o perpetuity_n and_o everlasting_a continuance_n do_v make_v the_o joy_n more_o precious_a for_o hereuppon_o it_o follow_v that_o those_o sorrow_n be_v light_o i7_n 2_z cor_fw-la 4_o i7_n and_o patient_o to_o be_v suffer_v which_o be_v momentany_a also_o by_o these_o word_n christ_n show_v what_o be_v true_a joy_n transitorye_n joy_n of_o the_o world_n be_v transitorye_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o world_n be_v transitory_a and_o sudden_o vanishinge_v away_o for_o that_o they_o consist_v in_o corcuptible_a and_o momentanie_n thing_n therefore_o we_o must_v come_v unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o which_o there_o be_v eternal_a stabillitie_n and_o continuance_n jesus_n joy_n everlasting_a be_v jesus_n because_o therefore_o christ_n himself_o be_v the_o joy_n of_o the_o godly_a it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v everlasting_a for_o christ_n die_v no_o more_o 6.9_o rom._n 6.9_o death_n have_v no_o more_o power_n over_o he_o therefore_o the_o faithful_a never_o want_v true_a matter_n of_o joy_n m_o wherefore_o that_o be_v not_o true_a sorrow_n which_o be_v turn_v into_o everlasting_a joy_n neither_o be_v that_o true_a joy_n which_o be_v convert_v into_o sorrow_n which_o shall_v never_o have_v a_o endde_a the_o wicked_a then_o be_v most_o unhappye_a and_o miserable_a which_o joy_n in_o this_o world_n and_o shall_v afterward_o sorrow_n weep_v and_o lament_v for_o ever_o and_o contrariwise_o most_o bless_a and_o happy_a be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n which_o mourn_n weep_v and_o lament_v in_o this_o life_n but_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v shall_v joy_n for_o ever_o and_o that_o which_o christ_n say_v here_o that_o there_o joy_n shall_v be_v perpetual_a agréeeth_n with_o that_o he_o say_v before_o 23._o and_o in_o that_o day_n shall_v you_o ask_v i_o no_o question_n very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v ask_v the_o father_n in_o my_o name_n he_o will_v geve_v it_o you_o c._n after_o that_o christ_n have_v promise_v joy_n unto_o his_o disciple_n which_o shall_v come_v of_o invincible_a fortitude_n and_o constancy_n now_o he_o promise_v unto_o they_o another_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v to_o say_v such_o light_n of_o understanding_n as_o by_o the_o same_o they_o shall_v reach_v unto_o heavenly_a mystery_n at_o this_o time_n when_o christ_n talk_v with_o they_o there_o be_v such_o great_a dulness_n in_o they_o that_o every_o scruple_n cause_v they_o to_o stay_v an●_n to_o doubt_n for_o as_o child_n which_o learn_v but_o their_o primer_n can_v read_v on_o verse_n through_o without_o stop_n and_o stay_v even_o so_o in_o every_o word_n of_o christ_n almost_o there_o be_v one_o offence_n or_o other_o which_o make_v the_o disciple_n to_o stay_v but_o within_o awhile_o after_o be_v illuminate_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o have_v no_o more_o stay_n and_o let_v but_o be_v famylier_o acquaint_v with_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n insomuche_o that_o they_o go_v forward_o without_o stoomble_v through_o the_o secret_a mystery_n of_o god_n m_o moreover_o there_o be_v some_o who_o by_o that_o day_n of_o the_o which_o christ_n make_v mention_v here_o understand_v that_o time_n which_o pass_v between_o the_o day_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n othersome_a more_o true_o extend_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o end_n f_o the_o world_n from_o that_o time_n in_o the_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v send_v unto_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o apostl_n differ_v nothing_o from_o child_n nay_o be_v more_o like_a unto_o block_n than_o man_n how_o sudden_o they_o be_v change_v by_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n we_o may_v plain_o see_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n i7_n act_n 2_o i7_n therefore_o whereas_o he_o deni_v that_o they_o shall_v ask_v any_o thing_n he_o have_v this_o meaning_n 8_o joel_n ●_o 8_o r._n in_o that_o day_n in_o the_o which_o i_o will_v send_v unto_o you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n all_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v reveal_v unto_o you_o of_o the_o which_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o c._n not_o because_o the_o apostle_n do_v cease_v even_o when_o they_o be_v most_o wise_a to_o demand_v at_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n but_o there_o be_v only_o here_o a_o comparison_n of_o a_o double_a state_n as_o if_o christ_n shall_v say_v that_o their_o rudeness_n shall_v be_v corect_v in_o such_o wise_a that_o they_o which_o do_v stut_v and_o stammer_v in_o every_o small_a thing_n shall_v easy_o attain_v to_o all_o perfection_n to_o this_o agree_v the_o say_n of_o hieremy_n and_o they_o shall_v teach_v no_o more_o every_o man_n his_o neighbore_n say_v know_v the_o lord_n for_o they_o shall_v all_o know_v i_o from_o the_o least_o of_o they_o unto_o the_o great_a he_o do_v not_o take_v away_o prophesy_v neither_o do_v he_o abolish_v that_o doctrine_n which_o ought_v to_o flourish_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o he_o rather_o deni_v that_o groase_a ignorance_n shall_v take_v place_n when_o all_o man_n be_v teach_v of_o god_n the_o which_o ignorance_n possess_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n untyll_o such_o time_n as_o christ_n the_o soon_o of_o righteousness_n illuminate_v they_o by_o the_o bright_a beam_n of_o his_o spirit_n whatsoever_o you_o shall_v ask_v the_o father_n a._n for_o the_o exposition_n of_o this_o place_n read_v the_o 13._o and_o 14._o verse_n of_o the_o 14._o chapter_n go_v before_o 24._o hitherto_o have_v you_o ask_v nothing_o in_o my_o name_n ask_v and_o you_o shall_v receive_v that_o your_o joy_n may_v be_v full_a a._n this_o seem_v at_o the_o first_o fight_n very_o absurd_a that_o the_o apostle_n ask_v nothing_o before_o that_o time_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n when_o as_o luke_n make_v mention_v that_o they_o desire_v christ_n to_o teach_v they_o a_o for●_n of_o prayer_n teach_v we_o say_v they_o to_o pray_v a_o john_n teach_v his_o disciple_n again_o it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o they_o be_v so_o long_o conversaunt_a with_o christ_n but_o that_o they_o observe_v that_o rule_n and_o form_n of_o prayer_n which_o the_o law_n prescribe_v beside_o this_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o they_o use_v to_o pray_v though_o for_o temporal_a thing_n only_o see_v christ_n teach_v they_o first_o to_o seek_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o righteousness_n thereof_o the_o which_o they_o perform_v afterward_o as_o may_v appear_v by_o this_o their_o petition_n lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n but_o christ_n by_o these_o word_n seek_v to_o bring_v his_o disciple_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a mediator_n c._n for_o he_o have_v already_o sufficient_o declare_v himself_o unto_o they_o to_o be_v the_o very_a same_o mediator_n but_o their_o knowledge_n be_v so_o obscure_a that_o they_o can_v not_o as_o yet_o frame_v their_o prayer_n aright_o in_o his_o name_n and_o it_o be_v no_o absurdity_n to_o say_v that_o they_o pray_v unto_o god_n upon_o trust_n of_o the_o
that_o evell_a where_o he_o say_v that_o they_o have_v overcome_v who_o be_v as_o yet_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o skyrmyshe_n but_o our_o condition_n differ_v far_o from_o they_o which_o fight_v under_o the_o standerde_n of_o man_n for_o mars_n to_o they_o be_v doubtful_a and_o the_o success_n of_o the_o battle_n uncertain_a but_o we_o before_o we_o encounter_v with_o the_o enemy_n be_v conqueror_n because_o our_o head_n christ_n have_v once_o overcome_v the_o whole_a world_n for_o we_o when_o he_o overcome_v satan_n the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n so_o that_o he_o may_v peradventure_o afflict_v the_o child_n of_o god_n but_o he_o can_v never_o have_v the_o victory_n for_o that_o the_o cause_n belong_v to_o god_n kingdom_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o world_n in_o this_o place_n christ_n reprehend_v all_o that_o be_v contrary_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o godly_a in_o special_o all_o corruption_n the_o which_o satan_n abuse_v to_o entrap_v and_o beguile_v us._n b._n therefore_o the_o world_n be_v so_o overcome_v by_o christ_n that_o it_o may_v only_o profit_v we_o but_o not_o hurt_v we_o if_o so_o be_v through_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o victory_n of_o the_o world_n we_o cleave_v fast_a unto_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n ❧_o the_o xvij_o chapter_n 1._o these_o word_n speak_v jesus_n and_o lyfte_v up_o his_o eye_n to_o heaven_n and_o say_v father_n the_o hour_n be_v come_v glorifye_v thy_o son_n that_o thy_o son_n also_o may_v glorifye_v thou_o r._n hitherto_o from_o the_o thirtéen_a chapter_n christ_n have_v teach_v that_o he_o be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n into_o this_o world_n and_o that_o he_o will_v go_v to_o the_o father_n again_o beside_o this_o he_o confirm_v with_o many_o comfortable_a consolalation_n all_o those_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o against_o the_o offence_n of_o the_o cross_n special_o with_o the_o last_o comfortable_a precept_n in_o the_o chapter_n go_v before_o be_v of_o good_a cheer_n i_o have_v overcome_v the_o world_n for_o whereunto_o soever_o thou_o have_v respect_n whether_o it_o be_v unto_o corporal_a thing_n or_o spiritual_a thing_n the_o cross_n be_v always_o object_v c._n wherefore_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v promise_v by_o he_o he_o make_v they_o to_o have_v better_a hope_n and_o also_o debate_v the_o matter_n at_o large_a concern_v the_o glory_n and_o excellency_n of_o his_o kingdom_n r._n and_o now_o he_o pray_v his_o father_n first_o that_o his_o father_n will_v glorifye_v he_o see_v that_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v now_o fulfil_v and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o glorifycation_n come_v then_o he_o pray_v for_o his_o apostle_n and_o last_o of_o all_o for_o all_o such_o as_o shall_v believe_v through_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o apostle_n m._n therefore_o christ_n add_v a_o prayer_n to_o that_o doctrine_n by_o the_o which_o he_o instruct_v and_o confirm_v his_o apostle_n and_o such_o a_o prayer_n as_o agree_v with_o the_o present_a cause_n of_o the_o which_o he_o have_v speak_v so_o large_o this_o be_v a_o most_o excellent_a order_n and_o dilligentlye_o to_o be_v observe_v and_o noat_v not_o only_o of_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o of_o the_o faithful_a that_o they_o turn_v from_o doctrine_n to_o prayer_n for_o doctrine_n will_v be_v can_v except_v the_o same_o be_v make_v effectual_a by_o god_n wherefore_o he_o geve_v a_o example_n to_o teacher_n not_o only_o to_o be_v painful_a in_o preach_v the_o word_n but_o also_o by_o use_v prayer_n therewith_o to_o call_v for_o help_v from_o god_n that_o it_o will_v please_v he_o by_o his_o benediction_n to_o make_v the_o same_o fruitful_a m._n for_o whether_o thou_o teach_v or_o be_v teach_v we_o must_v not_o look_v to_o receive_v increase_n and_o fruit_n by_o man_n but_o we_o must_v make_v our_o humble_a prayer_n unto_o god_n who_o geve_v boath_n to_o he_o that_o teach_v and_o to_o he_o that_o hear_v increase_n and_o profit_n c._n to_o be_v short_a this_o prayer_n of_o christ_n 7_z 1_z cor_n 3_o 7_z be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o seal_n of_o the_o former_a doctrine_n boath_n that_o it_o may_v be_v firm_a in_o itself_o and_o also_o that_o the_o disciple_n may_v geve_v credit_n thereunto_o and_o steadfast_o believe_v it_o c._n and_o in_o this_o chapter_n christ_n manife_v his_o priesthood_n of_o who_o it_o be_v write_v thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n also_o 4_o psal_n ii0_n 4_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o flesh_n he_o offer_v up_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n with_o strong_a cry_v and_o tear_n unto_o god_n 2_z heb._n 5_o 2_z which_o can_v save_v he_o from_o death_n and_o he_o be_v hear_v out_o of_o the_o fear_n m._n christ_n teach_v before_o now_o he_o pray_v together_o prayer_n &_o preach_v join_v together_o short_o after_o he_o purpose_v to_o offer_v up_o himself_o a_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n his_o father_n c._n and_o whereas_o john_n say_v that_o christ_n pray_v lyft_v up_o his_o eye_n unto_o heaven_n it_o be_v a_o token_n of_o great_a fervency_n in_o prayer_n for_o by_o this_o jesture_n he_o declare_v that_o his_o mind_n and_o affection_n be_v rather_o in_o heaven_n than_o in_o earth_n that_o leave_v man_n he_o may_v have_v familliare_a talk_n with_o god_n also_o he_o look_v uppe_o to_o heaven_n not_o because_o god_n be_v include_v there_o who_o replenish_v the_o whole_a earth_n but_o because_o his_o majesty_n there_o special_o appear_v 27._o jerem._n 27._o but_o concern_v this_o matter_n we_o have_v speak_v more_o in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n go_v before_o beginning_n at_o the_o forty_o and_o one_o verse_n father_n the_o hour_n be_v come_v m._n in_o that_o christ_n pray_v open_o and_o in_o the_o hear_v of_o his_o disciple_n it_o be_v not_o do_v without_o cause_n he_o love_v silence_n and_o secret_a prayer_n 6.6_o math._n 6.6_o as_o christ_n himself_o not_o only_o in_o word_n but_o also_o by_o his_o own_o deed_n teach_v in_o go_v apart_o when_o he_o will_v pray_v into_o the_o wilderness_n 14.23_o math._n 14.23_o or_o else_o into_o some_o solitary_a place_n but_o that_o kind_a of_o prayer_n which_o the_o lord_n use_v here_o be_v not_o only_o do_v for_o prayer_n sake_n but_o also_o for_o consolation_n and_o instruction_n and_o this_o manner_n of_o open_a prayer_n do_v not_o only_o perfect_a the_o disciple_n but_o have_v also_o bring_v unto_o we_o great_a consolation_n and_o instruction_n c._n first_o of_o all_o christ_n pray_v that_o his_o own_o kingdom_n may_v be_v glorify_v that_o he_o again_o may_v set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n he_o say_v the_o hour_n be_v come_v because_o although_o he_o be_v manifest_v by_o miracle_n and_o by_o all_o manner_n of_o power_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n yet_o notwythstand_v as_o yet_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n be_v obscure_a which_o short_o after_o gloriouslye_o shine_v also_o he_o say_v that_o the_o hour_n be_v come_v not_o which_o man_n have_v appoint_v but_o the_o hour_n which_o be_v decree_v by_o god_n r._n but_o some_o will_v say_v what_o mean_v this_o that_o christ_n pray_v be_v assure_v of_o his_o glorification_n i_o answer_v that_o assurance_n be_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o his_o prayer_n for_o except_o thou_o be_v sure_a &_o certain_a to_o obtain_v thou_o pray_v in_o vain_a faith_n prayer_n if_o it_o be_v effectual_a proceed_v from_o faith_n for_o effectual_a prayer_n must_v spring_v from_o faith_n and_o faith_n be_v dyrect_v to_o the_o firm_a and_o stable_a promise_n of_o god_n wherefore_o except_o faith_n be_v annex_v to_o the_o undoubted_a promise_n it_o can_v be_v that_o thou_o shall_v obtain_v 6.12_o math._n 6.12_o thus_o we_o pray_v daily_o forgive_v we_o our_o dette_n as_o we_o forgive_v our_o debtor_n when_o as_o christ_n purchase_v upon_o the_o cross_a remission_n of_o our_o dette_n many_o year_n before_o c._n therefore_o this_o prayer_n be_v not_o superfluous_a because_o christ_n so_o depend_v upon_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o notwythstand_v be_v know_v that_o he_o must_v pray_v for_o that_o which_o be_v promise_v unto_o he_o sertainelye_o to_o come_v to_o pass_v god_n undoubted_o will_v bring_v that_o to_o pass_v which_o he_o have_v decree_v though_o the_o whole_a world_n do_v gaynesaye_v and_o resist_v the_o same_o but_o yet_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v our_o part_n to_o crave_v that_o at_o his_o hand_n by_o prayer_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v because_o this_o be_v the_o use_n of_o promise_n to_o stir_v we_o uppe_o to_o pray_v m._n furthermore_o we_o must_v consider_v that_o he_o say_v not_o god_n glorifye_v i_o but_o father_n glorifye_v thy_o son_n first_o of_o all_o it_o express_v a_o trust_n and_o prerogative_n of_o the_o son_n towards_o the_o father_n than_o it_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o
he_o add_v another_o cause_n why_o he_o pray_v so_o earnest_o for_o his_o disciple_n because_o short_o they_o shall_v be_v destitute_a of_o his_o corporal_a presence_n by_o enjoy_v the_o which_o they_o be_v as_o yet_o cheerful_a so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v conversaunt_a with_o they_o he_o gather_v they_o and_o nourish_v they_o even_o as_o a_o hen_n do_v her_o chicken_n under_o his_o wing_n and_o now_o goo_v away_o he_o desire_v of_o the_o father_n to_o protect_v and_o defend_v they_o the_o which_o he_o do_v in_o respect_n of_o they_o for_o he_o seek_v to_o remedy_v their_o fear_n that_o they_o may_v stay_v themselves_o upon_o god_n himself_o to_o who_o he_o now_o deliver_v they_o as_o it_o be_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n m._n therefore_o now_o we_o see_v how_o the_o most_o faithful_a and_o love_a lord_n be_v not_o so_o desirous_a to_o go_v unto_o the_o father_n that_o he_o regard_v not_o the_o condition_n of_o his_o disciple_n but_o careful_o consider_v in_o what_o state_n to_o leave_v they_o after_o his_o departure_n hereof_o come_v no_o small_a consolation_n when_o we_o hear_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o more_o careful_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o he_o when_o he_o leave_v they_o according_a to_o his_o corporal_a presence_n for_o hereof_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o we_o also_o at_o this_o day_n labour_v in_o the_o world_n be_v regard_v of_o he_o in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o send_v help_v unto_o we_o when_o we_o be_v in_o trouble_n even_o from_o his_o heavenly_a glory_n holy_a either_o keep_v through_o thy_o own_o name_n m._n he_o know_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v subject_a to_o many_o danger_n in_o this_o world_n and_o therefore_o he_o pray_v that_o they_o may_v be_v preserve_v by_o his_o father_n providence_n c._n for_o all_o his_o prayer_n tend_v too_o that_o end_n lest_o his_o disciple_n shall_v be_v discourage_v as_o though_o their_o corporal_a state_n shall_v be_v the_o worse_a by_o the_o miss_n of_o the_o corporal_a presence_n of_o their_o master_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v my_o apostle_n shall_v abide_v persecution_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o gospel_n wherefore_o i_o pray_v that_o they_o faint_a not_o under_o the_o heavy_a burden_n of_o the_o cross_n m._n he_o add_v in_o thy_o name_n for_o because_o they_o be_v consecrate_v to_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v suffer_v many_o adversity_n in_o the_o world_n for_o his_o sake_n he_o pray_v that_o they_o may_v be_v preserve_v in_o or_o by_o his_o name_n r._n for_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v a_o most_o strong_a tower_n 18.10_o prou._n 18.10_o therefore_o the_o name_n of_o god_n can_v defend_v the_o faithful_a man_n from_o all_o evil_n and_o from_o the_o dart_n of_o satan_n c._n the_o sum_n than_o be_v this_o when_o the_o corporal_a sight_n of_o chryste_n be_v take_v from_o the_o disciple_n they_o sustain_v no_o loss_n because_o god_n receyve_v they_o into_o his_o protection_n who_o power_n be_v everlasting_a he_o ascribe_v the_o manner_n of_o save_v say_v that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o for_o those_o who_o the_o heavenly_a father_n have_v decree_v to_o save_v he_o gather_v into_o the_o holy_a unity_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n but_o because_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o man_n to_o agree_v together_o in_o one_o he_o add_v this_o even_o as_o we_o be_v one_o for_o than_o our_o unity_n shall_v be_v happy_a if_o so_o be_v it_o set_v forth_o the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o of_o christ_n even_o as_o the_o wax_n in_o the_o which_o the_o king_n or_o signet_n be_v print_v carry_v the_o mark_n or_o print_v of_o the_o same_o a._n but_o concern_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n read_v the_o ten_o chapter_n go_v before_o begin_v at_o the_o .30_o verse_n and_o in_o the_o verse_n follow_v 12._o while_o i_o be_v with_o they_o in_o the_o world_n i_o keep_v they_o in_o thy_o name_n those_o that_o thou_o give_v i_o have_v i_o keep_v and_o none_o of_o they_o be_v lose_v but_o that_o lose_v child_n that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v c._n christ_n say_v that_o he_o have_v keep_v they_o in_o his_o father_n name_n because_o he_o make_v himself_o only_o a_o minister_n which_o do_v nothing_o but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god._n he_o therefore_o thynk_v it_o not_o meet_v that_o they_o shall_v now_o perish_v as_o though_o the_o power_n of_o god_n by_o his_o departure_n be_v extinguish_v or_o bead_n r._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v hitherto_o i_o have_v confirm_v the_o apostle_n with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n yea_o i_o have_v leave_v nothing_o undoone_v that_o may_v keep_v they_o within_o the_o band_n and_o duty_n of_o faith_n and_o i_o have_v keep_v they_o that_o none_o shall_v perish_v but_o only_o that_o judas_n iscarioth_n of_o who_o fall_n the_o scripture_n before_o testify_v and_o now_o because_o i_o be_o goo_v away_o i_o commit_v they_o to_o thy_o charge_n for_o i_o shall_v be_v delyver_v too_o the_o adversary_n and_o shall_v be_v leave_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o wicked_a that_o in_o deryde_v i_o they_o shall_v say_v he_o save_v other_o himself_o he_o can_v not_o save_v wherefore_o i_o resign_v they_o over_o into_o thy_o hand_n that_o they_o may_v be_v preserve_v from_o all_o evil_a c._n but_o this_o seem_v very_o absurd_a that_o chryste_n shall_v set_v over_o unto_o god_n the_o offyce_v of_o save_v and_o preserve_v as_o though_o he_o have_v end_v the_o course_n of_o his_o life_n leass_v to_o be_v their_o keeper_n but_o this_o be_v thus_o answer_v that_o chryste_n speak_v only_o here_o of_o the_o visible_a custody_n which_o have_v a_o end_n in_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n for_o so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v conversaunte_a on_o earth_n he_o need_v not_o to_o borrow_v any_o other_o power_n to_o preserve_v his_o disciple_n but_o all_o this_o be_v refer_v too_o the_o person_n of_o the_o mediator_n which_o appear_v in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n for_o a_o tyme._n but_o now_o he_o command_v his_o disciple_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o begin_v to_o want_n but_o the_o least_o help_n to_o lyfte_v up_o their_o eye_n to_o heaven_n whereby_o we_o gather_v that_o chryste_n do_v no_o less_o preserve_v the_o faithful_a at_o this_o day_n than_o he_o have_v do_v in_o time_n paste_n but_o after_o a_o other_o manner_n because_o the_o devyne_a majesty_n open_o shine_v in_o he_o r._n for_o if_o so_o be_v christ_n keep_v and_o preserve_v he_o before_o he_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o father_n and_o satisfy_v the_o desire_n of_o the_o faithful_a concern_v joy_n how_o much_o more_o shall_v he_o keep_v they_o now_o see_v he_o have_v justify_v they_o by_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n for_o now_o our_o salvation_n be_v more_o near_o than_o when_o we_o believe_v and_o see_v when_o as_o yet_o we_o be_v sinner_n chryste_n die_v for_o we_o much_o more_o now_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o his_o blood_n 5.6_o rom._n 5.6_o shall_v be_v save_v through_o he_o from_o wrath_n m._n furthermore_o let_v we_o note_v here_o how_o chryste_n say_v that_o he_o have_v keep_v his_o disciple_n in_o the_o world_n for_o such_o be_v this_o world_n that_o the_o elect_n have_v need_n of_o god_n preservation_n so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o same_o c._n whereas_o he_o make_v exception_n here_o of_o judas_n it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n for_o although_o he_o be_v none_o of_o the_o elect_n and_o of_o god_n flock_n yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o office_n make_v he_o seem_v so_o to_o be_v neither_o will_v any_o man_n have_v think_v otherwise_o of_o he_o so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v in_o that_o office_n therefore_o in_o respect_n of_o grammar_n the_o exception_n be_v improper_a but_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o matter_n all_o man_n will_v say_v that_o it_o behove_v christ_n so_o to_o speak_v moreover_o lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o the_o eternal_a election_n of_o god_n be_v void_a in_o the_o destruction_n of_o judas_n he_o add_v héerewithal_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o perdition_n by_o which_o word_n he_o give_v to_o understand_v that_o his_o ruin_n and_o destruction_n which_o sudden_o appear_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n be_v from_o the_o beginning_n know_v unto_o god_n it_o appear_v therefore_o very_a well_o that_o chryste_n know_v for_o who_o he_o pray_v and_o for_o who_o he_o pray_v not_o m._n by_o this_o perdition_n of_o judas_n we_o may_v gather_v that_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o salvation_n for_o those_o which_o follow_v the_o step_n of_o judas_n persecute_v the_o truth_n of_o chryste_n for_o filthy_a gain_n whereby_o they_o manifest_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v bear_v the_o child_n of_o perdition_n see_v the_o same_o happen_v too_o
for_o divine_a law_n it_o have_v priest_n and_o philosopher_n which_o be_v learn_v elloquent_a and_o of_o great_a authority_n against_o who_o thou_o set_v we_o which_o be_v naked_a unprepared_a unlearned_a and_o barbarous_a man_n c._n therefore_o because_o almost_o no_o mortal_a man_n be_v fit_v for_o so_o hear_v a_o office_n therefore_o christ_n endu_v his_o apostle_n with_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n far_o surpass_v the_o strength_n and_o power_n of_o man_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o god_n to_o prefer_v the_o ambassage_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n to_o erect_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n in_o earth_n and_o to_o lift_v up_o man_n unto_o heaven_n wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o so_o be_v none_o be_v find_v fit_n but_o he_o which_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 12._o 1._o cor._n 12._o for_o no_o man_n can_v speak_v one_o word_n of_o christ_n except_o the_o holy_a ghost_n govern_v his_o tongue_n so_o far_o be_v every_o one_o from_o the_o faithful_a discharge_n of_o so_o notable_a a_o office_n but_o this_o glory_n belong_v only_o unto_o christ_n to_o frame_v &_o appoint_v those_o teacher_n which_o he_o set_v over_o his_o church_n for_o therefore_o he_o receyve_v the_o fullness_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o he_o may_v geve_v unto_o every_o one_o of_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o same_o and_o see_v he_o be_v the_o only_a shepeheard_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o those_o minister_n who_o labour_n he_o use_v in_o the_o church_n have_v the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n from_o he_o the_o which_o he_o declare_v by_o a_o external_a sign_n when_o he_o breathe_v upon_o his_o apostle_n what_o horrible_a sacrilege_n they_o be_v that_o of_o the_o papist_n which_o take_v that_o honour_n unto_o themselves_o which_o belong_v unto_o the_o son_n of_o god_n c._n for_o their_o consecrate_v bishop_n deprave_v these_o word_n when_o in_o make_v their_o mass_n priest_n they_o boast_v that_o they_o breath_n out_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o belch_a but_o the_o matter_n itself_o do_v plain_o declare_v how_o much_o their_o filthy_a breathe_n do_v differ_v from_o the_o divine_a breathe_n of_o christ_n because_o of_o brutish_a horse_n they_o do_v nothing_o else_o but_o make_v ignorant_a ass_n wherefore_o they_o usurp_v unto_o themselves_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o divinity_n which_o profess_v that_o they_o geve_v the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o breathe_v we_o must_v also_o note_v that_o christ_n endu_v they_o with_o necessary_a gift_n who_o he_o call_v to_o the_o pastoral_a office_n that_o they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o execute_v their_o office_n or_o at_o least_o not_o unprepared_a for_o the_o same_o therefore_o let_v we_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v lawful_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o as_o it_o may_v appear_v be_v endue_v with_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o some_o will_v say_v objection_n if_o so_o be_v christ_n at_o this_o time_n give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o breathe_v the_o send_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n afterward_o may_v seem_v superfluous_a answer_n answer_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v so_o give_v to_o the_o apostl_n in_o this_o place_n that_o they_o be_v only_o sprinckele_v with_o his_o grace_n and_o not_o endue_v with_o his_o full_a power_n for_o when_o the_o spirit_n appear_v in_o fiery_a tongue_n light_v upon_o they_o they_o be_v whole_o renew_a but_o at_o this_o time_n he_o do_v not_o so_o ordain_v they_o preacher_n of_o his_o gospel_n that_o they_o may_v biandby_o go_v forth_o to_o the_o same_o but_o rather_o as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o another_o place_n he_o command_v they_o to_o be_v quiet_a 24.42_o luk._n 24.42_o and_o to_o abide_v in_o the_o city_n until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v endue_v with_o power_n from_o above_o and_o when_o christ_n may_v have_v give_v grace_n to_o his_o apostle_n by_o secret_a inspiration_n he_o add_v thereunto_o visible_a breathe_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v not_o only_o instruct_v they_o with_o word_n but_o confirm_v they_o also_o with_o a_o certain_a sign_n 19.10_o jer._n 19.10_o to_o the_o end_n the_o mind_n of_o the_o disciple_n may_v doubt_v the_o less_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o promise_n the_o like_a sign_n jeremy_n use_v in_o threaten_a destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n but_o we_o must_v also_o note_v that_o the_o word_n be_v join_v to_o the_o external_a and_o visible_a sign_n for_o hereof_o sacrament_n take_v their_o force_n not_o that_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v include_v in_o the_o voice_n which_o sound_v in_o the_o ear_n but_o because_o the_o effect_n of_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o faithful_a understande_v and_o feel_v by_o sacrament_n depend_v upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o word_n christ_n breathe_v upon_o his_o apostle_n but_o they_o receive_v not_o only_o breathe_v but_o also_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o wherefore_o but_o only_o because_o christ_n promise_v unto_o they_o thus_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o sacrament_n whereupon_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o whatsoever_o sacrament_n man_n have_v devise_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o mere_a toy_n because_o there_o can_v be_v no_o truth_n in_o sign_n but_o where_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v present_a 23._o whosoever_n sin_n you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v unto_o they_o and_o whosoever_n sin_n you_o retain_v they_o be_v retain_v c._n after_o that_o christ_n have_v ordain_v and_o appoint_v ambassador_n to_o be_v send_v forth_o into_o the_o world_n now_o more_o express_o be_v describe_v the_o office_n or_o ministry_n of_o his_o apostle_n and_o comprehend_v in_o few_o word_n the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o this_o power_n of_o remit_v of_o sin_n must_v not_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o office_n of_o teach_v christ_n sin_n remit_v by_o christ_n to_o that_o which_o here_o it_o be_v annex_v m._n the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o come_v into_o this_o world_n and_o suffer_v the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n to_o bring_v remission_n of_o sin_n unto_o mankind_n so_o say_v the_o angel_n 4.6_o mat._n 1.21_o lu._n 24.47_o rom._n 4.6_o he_o shall_v deliver_v his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n for_o in_o this_o consist_v our_o salvation_n that_o our_o sin_n be_v free_o forgive_v we_o even_o as_o damnation_n stand_v in_o the_o retain_v of_o they_o apostle_n remission_n of_o sin_n pronounce_v by_o the_o apostle_n c._n therefore_o the_o special_a end_n of_o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v that_o man_n may_v he_o reconcile_v unto_o god_n because_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v free_a even_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n teach_v in_o the_o fyfth_o chapter_n of_o his_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n where_o upon_o this_o consideration_n he_o call_v the_o gospel_n the_o ministry_n of_o reconciliation_n many_o other_o thing_n the_o gospel_n contain_v but_o this_o be_v the_o special_a thing_n which_o god_n intreat_v of_o in_o the_o same_o that_o he_o may_v receyve_v man_n into_o his_o favour_n not_o impute_v unto_o they_o their_o sin_n they_z therefore_o which_o will_v show_v themselves_o faithful_a minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n must_v be_v very_o painful_a in_o this_o point_n for_o the_o gospel_n do_v differ_v special_o from_o profane_a philosophy_n in_o this_o sin_n salvation_n consist_v in_o free_a remission_n of_o sin_n that_o it_o place_v the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n in_o the_o free_a remission_n of_o sin_n for_o hereof_o come_v other_o benefyte_n of_o god_n as_o that_o god_n illuminate_v and_o regenerate_v we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n that_o he_o make_v we_o like_a unto_o himself_o and_o arm_v we_o with_o invincible_a fortitude_n against_o the_o world_n and_o the_o devil_n so_o that_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o piety_n and_o the_o spiritual_a building_n of_o god_n stand_v upon_o this_o foundation_n that_o god_n deliver_v we_o from_o all_o our_o sin_n adopt_v we_o to_o be_v his_o son_n m._n but_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v objection_n how_o christ_n give_v unto_o his_o apostle_n power_n to_o remit_v sin_n see_v it_o belong_v only_o unto_o god_n to_o remit_v sin_n answer_n answer_v christ_n so_o command_v his_o apostle_n to_o remit_v sin_n that_o he_o do_v not_o geve_v unto_o they_o that_o which_o belong_v unto_o himself_o it_o be_v proper_a to_o himself_o to_o remit_v sin_n this_o honour_n as_o it_o be_v proper_a to_o himself_o he_o do_v not_o geve_v unto_o his_o apostle_n but_o command_v they_o in_o his_o name_n to_o pronounce_v remission_n of_o sin_n that_o by_o they_o he_o may_v reconcile_v man_n unto_o god_n and_o to_o speak_v proper_o he_o himself_o alone_o forgive_v sin_n by_o his_o apostle_n notwithstanding_o this_o be_v give_v to_o establish_v our_o faith_n when_o he_o so_o great_o extoll_v their_o power_n that_o he_o make_v they_o witness_n only_o and_o proclaymer_n of_o this_o grace_n and_o not_o the_o author_n of_o the_o
with_o he_o know_v thou_o therefore_o that_o i_o and_o he_o be_v all_o one_o in_o divinity_n and_o divine_a majesty_n which_o can_v be_v see_v with_o corporal_a eye_n 10._o believe_v thou_o not_o that_o i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o i_o the_o word_n that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o myself_o but_o the_o father_n that_o dwell_v in_o i_o be_v he_o that_o do_v the_o work_n c._n some_o refer_v this_o to_o the_o divine_a essence_n of_o christ_n c._n but_o they_o do_v better_a which_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o revelation_n for_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o secret_a deity_n be_v never_o a_o whit_n more_o know_v unto_o we_o than_o the_o father_n but_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o express_a image_n of_o god_n because_o god_n have_v whole_o reveal_v himself_o in_o he_o by_o his_o exceed_a goodness_n wisdom_n and_o power_n neither_o have_v the_o ancient_a father_n do_v amiss_o which_o bring_v testimony_n from_o hence_o to_o defend_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n but_o because_o christ_n do_v not_o simp_o dispute_v who_o he_o be_v in_o himself_o but_o who_o we_o ought_v to_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v it_o be_v rather_o a_o title_a of_o his_o power_n than_o of_o his_o essence_n the_o father_n therefore_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o christ_n because_o the_o full_a divinity_n dwell_v in_o he_o and_o again_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o the_o father_n because_o by_o his_o divine_a power_n he_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v all_o one_o with_o he_o the_o word_n that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o b._n he_o prove_v of_o the_o effect_n that_o god_n ought_v to_o be_v seek_v for_o in_o no_o other_o than_o in_o he_o m._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v my_o very_a doctrine_n prove_v i_o to_o be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o i_o for_o it_o be_v not_o humane_a but_o divine_a and_o such_o that_o it_o plain_o set_v forth_o the_o soon_o of_o god_n also_o you_o yourselves_o have_v confess_v before_o that_o i_o have_v in_o i_o the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o that_o you_o know_v and_o beléeve_v that_o i_o be_o the_o son_n of_o god_n r._n if_o therefore_o my_o word_n be_v the_o word_n of_o my_o father_n and_o my_o work_n the_o work_n of_o the_o father_n he_o which_o will_v know_v the_o father_n must_v of_o necessity_n believe_v my_o word_n and_o behold_v my_o work_n in_o faith_n for_o no_o man_n know_v the_o father_n but_o by_o the_o son_n and_o no_o man_n know_v god_n but_o by_o his_o word_n c._n if_o any_o man_n object_n against_o this_o that_o all_o the_o prophet_n be_v to_o be_v count_v the_o son_n of_o god_n because_o they_o speak_v by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o have_v god_n the_o author_n of_o their_o doctrine_n we_o may_v easy_o answer_v that_o we_o must_v consider_v what_o the_o doctrine_n contain_v for_o the_o prophet_n send_v their_o disciple_n to_o a_o other_o but_o christ_n retain_v they_o in_o himself_o we_o must_v also_o remember_v what_o the_o apostle_n wright_v namely_o how_o that_o god_n speak_v now_o from_o heaven_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o son_n who_o speak_v as_o it_o be_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n by_o moses_n by_o work_n he_o understand_v not_o only_a miracle_n but_o also_o the_o declaration_n of_o his_o divine_a power_n 11._o believe_v i_o that_o i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o i_o or_o else_o believe_v i_o for_o the_o work_v sake_n c._n first_o of_o all_o he_o require_v his_o disciple_n to_o believe_v his_o testimony_n when_o he_o affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n notwithstanding_o because_o they_o have_v be_v hitherto_o to_o slow_a he_o do_v priveli_a nip_n their_o negligence_n if_o so_o be_v say_v he_o my_o affirmation_n be_v not_o of_o credit_n enough_o with_o you_o and_o if_o you_o make_v so_o small_a account_n of_o i_o that_o you_o think_v my_o word_n be_v not_o to_o be_v beléeve_v at_o the_o lest_o consider_v my_o power_n which_o be_v the_o visible_a image_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n it_o be_v very_o strange_a that_o they_o shall_v not_o depend_v upon_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n see_v that_o every_o word_n which_o he_o speak_v aught_o to_o have_v be_v believe_v without_o doubt_v but_o christ_n here_o reprehend_v his_o disciple_n for_o that_o they_o be_v so_o often_o tell_v of_o one_o thing_n profit_v so_o little_a he_o do_v not_o teach_v what_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o faith_n but_o testify_v that_o he_o have_v that_o which_o may_v suffice_v to_o reprove_v the_o unbeliever_n in_o that_o he_o say_v again_o i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o i_o it_o be_v not_o superfluous_a for_o we_o see_v by_o daily_a experience_n how_o nature_n prick_v we_o forward_o to_o vain_a curiosity_n 12_z very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o he_o that_o beleve_v on_o i_o the_o work_n that_o i_o do_v the_o same_o shall_v he_o do_v also_o and_o great_a work_n than_o these_o shall_v he_o do_v because_o i_o go_v unto_o the_o father_n b._n the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n in_o these_o word_n be_v that_o he_o may_v persuade_v his_o disciple_n not_o to_o be_v sorry_a for_o his_o departure_n from_o they_o which_o shall_v happen_v unto_o they_o for_o the_o best_a but_o rather_o to_o prepare_v themselves_o stout_o and_o dilygent_o to_o discharge_v the_o office_n of_o the_o gospel_n c._n for_o what_o so_o ever_o christ_n have_v speak_v of_o himself_o hitherto_o unto_o his_o disciple_n it_o be_v temporal_a in_o respect_n of_o they_o therefore_o without_o the_o add_v of_o this_o part_n the_o consolation_n have_v not_o be_v full_a and_o perfect_a special_o see_v in_o remember_v the_o benefit_n our_o memory_n be_v frail_a in_o the_o which_o matter_n we_o need_v no_o other_o example_n for_o when_o god_n have_v heap_v upon_o we_o all_o manner_n of_o benefit_n if_o he_o cease_v but_o half_a a_o month_n we_o will_v think_v that_o he_o be_v dead_a in_o consideration_n of_o this_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o speak_v of_o his_o present_a power_n which_o his_o apostle_n at_o that_o time_n behold_v with_o their_o eye_n but_o also_o promise_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o perpetual_a féelinge_n of_o the_o same_o ever_o after_o and_o very_o he_o do_v not_o only_o while_o he_o be_v on_o the_o earth_n declare_v his_o divinity_n but_o also_o after_o he_o be_v go_v unto_o the_o father_n the_o faithful_a have_v experience_n of_o the_o same_o but_o we_o be_v either_o dull_a or_o so_o wicked_a that_o we_o neither_o consider_v god_n in_o his_o work_n nor_o christ_n in_o the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o great_a work_n than_o these_o shall_v he_o do_v a_o these_o word_n be_v diverse_o expound_v by_o interpreter_n some_o restrain_v these_o work_n unto_o the_o miracle_n which_o the_o apostle_n wrought_v after_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o that_o they_o may_v prove_v to_o be_v great_a than_o those_o that_o christ_n wrought_v they_o allege_v that_o which_o luke_n write_v of_o the_o shadow_n of_o peter_n but_o the_o rise_n of_o lazarus_n be_v a_o more_o wonderful_a work_n than_o the_o simple_a hel_n of_o sick_a person_n other_o some_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o number_n of_o miracle_n sayinge_v that_o the_o apostle_n wrought_v great_a miracle_n because_o they_o wrought_v more_o in_o number_n 15.16_o act._n 15.16_o both_o in_o jerusalem_n &_o in_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n &_o they_o affirm_v this_o place_n to_o agree_v with_o that_o in_o mark_n and_o these_o sign_n shall_v follow_v they_o that_o believe_v i7_n mat._n 16_o i7_n in_o my_o name_n they_o shall_v cast_v out_o devil_n etc._n etc._n c._n but_o this_o be_v the_o simple_a meaning_n of_o christ_n that_o his_o power_n be_v so_o little_o tie_v to_o that_o presence_n of_o his_o body_n by_o which_o he_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v set_v forth_o by_o more_o and_o great_a experiment_n he_o be_v absent_a for_o straight_o after_o the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n follow_v the_o wonderful_a conversion_n of_o the_o world_n in_o which_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n more_o mighty_o declare_v itself_o then_o when_o he_o live_v among_o man_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o divinitye_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o shut_v up_o in_o his_o parson_n but_o spread_v throughoute_n the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n but_o to_o do_v this_o of_o the_o which_o he_o speak_v here_o be_v neither_o proper_a to_o the_o apostell_v alone_a nor_o common_a to_o all_o the_o godly_a but_o belong_v to_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n because_o i_o go_v to_o the_o father_n c._n the_o reason_n why_o the_o apostle_n shall_v do_v great_a
miracle_n than_o christ_n himself_o be_v because_o he_o go_v to_o take_v possession_n of_o his_o kingdom_n will_v more_o full_o show_v forth_o his_o power_n from_o heaven_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o nothing_o of_o his_o glory_n be_v deminish_v in_o that_o his_o apostle_n wrought_v more_o excelentlye_o after_o his_o departure_n who_o be_v only_o his_o instrument_n yea_o 2._o philip._n 2._o hereby_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n that_o every_o knee_n may_v bow_v before_o he_o r._n for_o to_o go_v unto_o the_o father_n in_o this_o place_n be_v for_o christ_n be_v now_o not_o only_a god_n but_o also_o man_n by_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o father_n to_o sit_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o to_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o rule_n of_o all_o creture_n the_o which_o appear_v then_o to_o the_o world_n when_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o true_a successor_n preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o diverse_a part_n 13._o and_o what_o so_o ever_o you_o ask_v in_o my_o name_n that_o will_v i_o do_v that_o the_o father_n may_v be_v gloryfy_v in_o the_o son_n bu_n now_o he_o utter_v a_o other_o argument_n of_o his_o devinitie_n ▪_o the_o which_o be_v right_o weigh_v wonderful_o comfort_v i_o will_v do_v say_v he_o for_o you_o what_o so_o ever_o you_o ask_v in_o my_o name_n for_o i_o be_o god_n and_o it_o belong_v unto_o god_n alone_o to_o hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o all_o man_n &_o to_o grant_v and_o fulfil_v all_o man_n desire_n b._n therefore_o he_o geve_v a_o reason_n of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v that_o the_o beléeve_v in_o he_o shall_v work_v great_a work_n than_o he_o wrought_v which_o he_o special_o promise_v to_o his_o disciple_n at_o that_o time_n present_a his_o meaning_n therefore_o be_v this_o think_v not_o that_o incredible_a which_o i_o have_v promise_v unto_o you_o wherefore_o what_o soever_o you_o shall_v ask_v in_o my_o name_n i_o will_v geve_v unto_o you_o but_o he_o speak_v of_o those_o work_n and_o miracle_n by_o which_o the_o father_n shall_v be_v gloryfy_v in_o the_o son_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o which_o he_o be_v acknowlege_v to_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v draw_v this_o promise_n to_o every_o thing_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n be_v the_o health_n of_o his_o saint_n glori_fw-la prayer_n accord_v to_o god_n glori_fw-la and_o therefore_o before_o all_o other_o thing_n they_o pray_v that_o his_o name_n may_v be_v sanctify_v and_o that_o his_o kingdom_n may_v come_v neither_o do_v they_o pray_v for_o any_o thing_n unto_o the_o which_o they_o be_v not_o move_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n m._n to_o ask_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o pray_v for_o somewhat_o which_o either_o pertain_v to_o his_o name_n or_o kingdom_n 4._o act._n 4._o or_o else_o by_o the_o prorogative_n of_o his_o name_n may_v be_v hope_v to_o be_v obtain_v after_o the_o first_o manner_n the_o apostle_n pray_v to_o god_n the_o father_n as_o we_o may_v read_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n after_o the_o other_o manner_n all_o the_o faithful_a prey_n i_o will_v do_v it_o by_o these_o word_n he_o declare_v that_o he_o be_v not_o only_o a_o mediator_n but_o also_o the_o lord_n of_o all_o thing_n who_o can_v grant_v all_o thing_n that_o we_o ask_v yea_o and_o as_o he_o can_v so_o also_o he_o will_n he_o teach_v also_o what_o the_o end_n be_v whereunto_o all_o our_o prayer_n must_v be_v direct_v namely_o that_o the_o father_n may_v be_v gloryfy_v by_o the_o son_n therefore_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v such_o that_o they_o can_v be_v do_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n be_v neither_o right_o ask_v of_o we_o nor_o yet_o can_v be_v obtain_v so_o that_o this_o place_n agree_v with_o this_o say_n of_o paul_n that_o every_o tongue_n shall_v confess_v that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n xi_o phil._n 2._o xi_o be_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o father_n the_o end_n of_o all_o prayer_n be_v the_o hallow_a of_o god_n name_n but_o the_o lawful_a way_n to_o sanctify_v be_v here_o express_v name_o in_o the_o son_n and_o by_o the_o son_n for_o when_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n be_v hide_v from_o we_o in_o itself_o it_o shine_v in_o christ_n when_o his_o hand_n be_v hide_v we_o have_v the_o same_o visible_a in_o christ_n therefore_o in_o those_o benefit_n which_o the_o father_n bestow_v upon_o we_o we_o must_v not_o separate_v he_o from_o the_o son_n according_a to_o this_o say_n he_z which_o honour_v not_o the_o son_n honour_v not_o the_o father_n 5.23_o joh._n 5.23_o 14._o if_o you_o shall_v ask_v any_o thing_n in_o my_o name_n i_o will_v do_v it_o r._n christ_n repeat_v one_o thing_n twice_o that_o those_o thing_n may_v be_v more_o assure_v which_o he_o promise_v for_o we_o obtain_v nothing_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o father_n but_o by_o the_o son_n c._n the_o repetition_n thereof_o be_v not_o superfluous_a all_o man_n see_v and_o feel_v that_o they_o be_v unworthye_a to_o approach_v unto_o god_n yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o great_a part_n rush_v forth_o like_o mad_a man_n and_o bold_o yea_o rather_o proud_o talk_v with_o god_n afterward_o when_o that_o unworthynesse_n of_o the_o which_o we_o speak_v even_o now_o come_v in_o their_o mind_n every_o man_n devise_v for_o himself_o new_a mean_n but_o god_n call_v we_o unto_o he_o set_v before_o we_o one_o mediator_n by_o who_o he_o will_v be_v entreat_v and_o also_o favourable_a unto_o we_o ▪_o but_o hear_v again_o the_o corruption_n of_o human_a wisdom_n triumph_v because_o the_o great_a part_n forsake_v the_o true_a way_n weari_v itself_o in_o crocked_a and_o by_o way_n this_o therefore_o come_v to_o pass_v because_o the_o power_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n be_v not_o apprehend_v as_o it_o shall_v in_o christ_n there_o be_v also_o a_o second_o error_n namely_o the_o not_o remember_v that_o we_o be_v all_o just_o drive_v from_o the_o access_n and_o come_n unto_o god_n until_o we_o be_v call_v of_o he_o and_o that_o we_o be_v not_o call_v but_o by_o his_o son_n wherefore_o if_o we_o think_v one_o testimony_n insufficient_a yet_o not_o withstand_v let_v we_o know_v that_o for_o as_o much_o as_o christ_n do_v the_o second_o time_n entreat_v that_o the_o father_n must_v be_v pray_v unto_o in_o his_o name_n he_o do_v as_o it_o be_v lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o we_o lest_o we_o shall_v travail_v in_o vain_a in_o seek_v after_o their_o patroness_n and_o help_n a._n for_o there_o be_v one_o only_a mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n 2.5_o 1._o tim._n 2.5_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n sin_n we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n the_o righteous_a 1_o 1._o joh_n ●_o 1_o and_o he_o be_v a_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n &_o not_o for_o our_o sin_n only_o but_o also_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n concern_v the_o which_o matter_n read_v more_o in_o the_o vii_o of_o matthew_n begin_v at_o the_o seven_o verse_n 15._o if_o you_o love_v i_o keep_v my_o commandment_n m._n this_o verse_n contain_v a_o exhortation_n join_v with_o comfortable_a promise_n bu_n the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n throughout_o the_o whole_a scripture_n do_v not_o only_o show_v and_o teach_v plain_o the_o truth_n but_o also_o most_o vehement_o urge_v that_o we_o shall_v receive_v and_o retain_v the_o same_o when_o we_o know_v it_o whereupon_o our_o lord_n also_o in_o this_o present_a place_n join_v a_o exhortation_n to_o the_o consolation_n and_o divine_a doctrine_n by_o all_o mean_n urge_v his_o disciple_n &_o in_o they_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o receyve_v and_o retain_v these_o thing_n and_o to_o exercise_v themselves_o in_o they_o c._n it_o be_v true_a and_o sincere_a love_n with_o the_o which_o the_o disciple_n love_v christ_n the_o which_o notwithstanding_o be_v somewhat_o mix_v with_o superstition_n the_o which_o also_o happen_v oftentimes_o unto_o us._n for_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o way_n in_o desire_v to_o retain_v christ_n still_o in_o the_o world_n that_o he_o may_v correct_v this_o vice_n he_o command_v they_o to_o bend_v their_o love_n another_o way_n namely_o to_o the_o observe_n of_o those_o commandment_n which_o he_o have_v give_v they_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o have_v teach_v you_o by_o this_o my_o word_n that_o i_o go_v to_o my_o father_n i_o have_v teach_v you_o why_o i_o go_v and_o what_o fruit_n come_v unto_o you_o thereby_o and_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o because_o you_o here_o that_o i_o shall_v dye_v you_o be_v great_o trouble_v even_o as_o man_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v for_o the_o departure_n of_o their_o friend_n and_o you_o